Selected quad for the lemma: prince_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
prince_n call_v king_n wales_n 2,937 5 10.1170 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A07768 The mysterie of iniquitie: that is to say, The historie of the papacie Declaring by what degrees it is now mounted to this height, and what oppositions the better sort from time to time haue made against it. Where is also defended the right of emperours, kings, and Christian princes, against the assertions of the cardinals, Bellarmine and Baronius. By Philip Morney, knight, Lord du Plessis, &c. Englished by Samson Lennard.; Mystère d'iniquité. English Mornay, Philippe de, seigneur du Plessis-Marly, 1549-1623.; Lennard, Samson, d. 1633. 1612 (1612) STC 18147; ESTC S115092 954,645 704

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o mystery_n of_o iniqvitie_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o history_n of_o the_o papacy_n declare_v by_o what_o degree_n it_o be_v now_o mount_v to_o this_o height_n and_o what_o opposition_n the_o better_a sort_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v make_v against_o it_o where_o be_v also_o defend_v the_o right_n of_o emperor_n king_n and_o christian_a prince_n against_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n by_o philip_n morney_n knight_n lord_n du_fw-fr plessis_n etc._n etc._n english_v by_o samson_n lennard_n falleris_n aeternam_fw-la qui_fw-la suspicis_fw-la ebrius_fw-la arcem_fw-la subruta_n succensis_fw-la mox_fw-la corruet_fw-la ima_fw-la tigillis_fw-la london_n print_v by_o adam_n jslip_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1612._o to_o the_o most_o high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n henry_n prince_n of_o wales_n son_n and_o heir_n apparent_a to_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n if_o the_o lord_n du_fw-fr plessis_n most_o high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n have_v finish_v this_o his_o work_n out_o of_o that_o reverend_a and_o honourable_a conceit_n he_o have_v of_o your_o father_n greatness_n that_o unfeigned_a love_n which_o true_a religion_n wrought_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o that_o hope_v he_o have_v of_o his_o future_a endeavour_n to_o beat_v down_o antichrist_n think_v it_o a_o sin_n though_o a_o stranger_n to_o think_v of_o any_o other_o patron_n but_o himself_o to_o who_o he_o may_v dedicate_v these_o his_o labour_n much_o more_o i_o his_o natural_a subject_n link_v unto_o your_o highness_n his_o natural_a son_n with_o the_o same_o bond_n rapt_v with_o the_o same_o admiration_n feed_v with_o the_o same_o hope_n must_v say_v have_v finish_v these_o my_o labour_n cui_fw-la dicâre_fw-la debeam_fw-la ambigere_fw-la nefas_fw-la for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o move_v he_o must_v likewise_o encourage_v i_o your_o greatness_n must_v encourage_v because_o the_o same_o be_v a_o princely_a branch_n spring_v from_o that_o royal_a stock_n your_o religion_n must_v encourage_v because_o the_o same_o which_o your_o worthy_a father_n and_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v make_v profession_n of_o your_o hopeful_a endeavour_n must_v encourage_v because_o the_o same_o for_o what_o he_o conceive_v of_o your_o princely_a father_n the_o whole_a world_n expect_v shall_v be_v perform_v if_o not_o by_o he_o by_o your_o hand_n his_o pen_n have_v make_v way_n for_o your_o sword_n and_o his_o peace_n if_o god_n give_v long_a life_n may_v far_o your_o war_n glorious_a be_v his_o peace_n and_o your_o war_n and_o god_n glory_n the_o end_n of_o both_o his_o highness_n can_v best_o judge_v what_o be_v fit_v we_o can_v but_o wish_v and_o if_o he_o have_v beg_v at_o god_n hand_n with_o hezekiah_n that_o there_o may_v be_v peace_n in_o his_o day_n we_o all_o say_v amen_o and_o with_o one_o voice_n we_o all_o cry_v out_o let_v there_o be_v peace_n upon_o israel_n only_o we_o wish_v he_o may_v never_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v as_o david_n do_v i_o seek_v peace_n and_o when_o i_o speak_v thereof_o they_o be_v bend_v to_o war_n they_o intend_v mischief_n and_o therefore_o renown_a prince_n leave_v your_o royal_a father_n to_o god_n peace_n and_o his_o own_o heart_n desire_v give_v i_o leave_v though_o altogether_o unworthy_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n to_o advise_v yet_o to_o wish_v with_o du_fw-fr plessis_n that_o i_o may_v live_v to_o march_v over_o the_o alps_n and_o to_o trail_n a_o pike_n before_o the_o wall_n of_o rome_n under_o your_o highness_n standard_n it_o be_v my_o first_o profession_n oh_o that_o it_o may_v be_v my_o last_o the_o cause_n be_v god_n the_o enterprise_n glorious_a o_o that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v as_o he_o have_v give_v you_o a_o heart_n so_o to_o give_v power_n to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o our_o hope_n be_v in_o the_o bud_n let_v i_o humble_o beseech_v your_o highness_n till_o my_o sword_n may_v do_v you_o service_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o poor_a endeavour_n of_o my_o unskilful_a pen_n and_o as_o it_o have_v please_v your_o highness_n not_o long_o since_o gracious_o to_o protect_v my_o sorry_a labour_n bestow_v upon_o charron_n his_o three_o book_n of_o wisdom_n so_o now_o to_o pardon_v my_o boldness_n in_o undertake_v a_o work_n so_o far_o unbefit_v my_o strength_n and_o to_o protect_v my_o infirmity_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n ever_o bless_v your_o highness_n and_o ever_o defend_v you_o from_o antichrist_n and_o his_o bloody_a designment_n that_o you_o may_v live_v and_o live_v long_o even_o in_o perniciem_fw-la to_o the_o ruin_n of_o he_o and_o all_o his_o antichristian_a rabble_n amen_o amen_n to_o your_o highness_n most_o humble_o devote_a samson_n lennard_n to_o the_o right_n reverend_a father_n in_o god_n george_n archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o england_n and_o john_n bishop_n of_o london_n right_o reverend_a and_o my_o very_a good_a lord_n i_o be_o bold_a out_o of_o that_o duty_n i_o owe_v to_o two_o so_o great_a prelate_n and_o pillar_n of_o this_o our_o church_n of_o england_n to_o present_v unto_o your_o learned_a and_o judicious_a censure_n my_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a labour_n bestow_v upon_o a_o work_n worthy_a the_o read_n in_o itself_o howsoever_o by_o my_o unskilful_a pen_n it_o may_v be_v disfigure_v i_o confess_v i_o be_v unfitting_a among_o a_o thousand_o to_o undertake_v a_o work_n of_o such_o consequence_n and_o yet_o better_a i_o as_o i_o think_v than_o none_o be_v a_o mystery_n fit_a to_o be_v lay_v open_a to_o as_o many_o as_o can_v read_v it_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n my_o good_a lord_n pardon_v such_o fault_n as_o either_o by_o too_o much_o speed_n or_o too_o little_a skill_n or_o otherwise_o have_v slip_v my_o pen_n there_o be_v nothing_o past_o that_o may_v not_o be_v amend_v in_o a_o second_o edition_n if_o your_o grace_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o give_v the_o encouragement_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n as_o he_o have_v multiply_v his_o gift_n and_o grace_n upon_o you_o fit_a for_o so_o high_a a_o call_n even_o in_o the_o high_a measure_n so_o ever_o assist_v you_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o that_o great_a work_n you_o have_v undertake_v to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n your_o grace_n and_o lordship_n in_o all_o duty_n to_o be_v command_v samson_n lennard_n to_o the_o reader_n gentle_a reader_n i_o have_v once_o again_o adventure_v myself_o upon_o your_o gentle_a censure_n with_o this_o only_a request_n that_o though_o perhaps_o a_o curious_a eye_n may_v find_v fault_n enough_o yea_o sometime_o where_o there_o be_v none_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o do_v i_o this_o favour_n that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n you_o shall_v find_v i_o to_o disagree_v sometime_o from_o the_o latin_a copy_n sometime_o from_o the_o french_a not_o to_o condemn_v i_o without_o the_o examination_n of_o both_o because_o in_o this_o translation_n i_o have_v follow_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v and_o as_o i_o find_v they_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sense_n this_o be_v all_o i_o request_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o i_o know_v the_o most_o unskilful_a be_v more_o ready_a to_o judge_v than_o he_o that_o can_v judge_v judicious_o s._n l._n to_o the_o friend_n and_o follower_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v i_o once_o again_o my_o brethren_n and_o friend_n speak_v unto_o you_o and_o though_o perhaps_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o importune_v you_o over_o much_o yet_o it_o be_v with_o the_o same_o importunity_n which_o the_o apostle_n commend_v to_o his_o disciple_n 2._o 2._o tim._n 4._o v._n 2._o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n yea_o with_o that_o wholesome_a and_o opportune_a importunity_n wherewith_o we_o pluck_v those_o that_o be_v near_o and_o dear_a unto_o we_o even_o by_o the_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n out_o of_o the_o furious_a rage_n of_o fire_n and_o water_n wherewith_o we_o pinch_v and_o prick_v those_o even_o till_o they_o bleed_v that_o be_v die_v of_o a_o lethargy_n what_o shall_v i_o then_o say_v unto_o you_o to_o some_o that_o be_v float_v or_o rather_o fleet_v betwixt_o many_o opinion_n and_o to_o other_o that_o have_v already_o step_v over_o the_o threshold_n get_v one_o foot_n out_o of_o babylon_n the_o huge_a height_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o popedom_n like_o a_o scarecrow_n be_v obtrude_v she_o be_v old_a indeed_o and_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o strike_v in_o year_n in_o so_o much_o that_o she_o lie_v grovel_v upon_o her_o belly_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o stupendious_a whereas_o contrariwise_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v little_a and_o of_o small_a continuance_n either_o by_o the_o novelty_n thereof_o or_o the_o poverty_n be_v contemptible_a and_o here_o that_o common_a cry_n of_o the_o jew_n
theodora_n surprise_v with_o the_o beauty_n of_o this_o john_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o eleven_o who_o then_o have_v some_o charge_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ravenna_n do_v not_o only_o entice_v but_o force_v he_o to_o lie_v with_o she_o these_o thing_n while_o they_o be_v thus_o impudent_o carry_v the_o bishop_n of_o bologne_n die_v this_o john_n be_v choose_v in_o his_o place_n at_o the_o last_o sergius_n die_v to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v not_o be_v too_o far_o from_o her_o paramour_n for_o ravenna_n be_v distant_a from_o rome_n two_o hundred_o mile_n she_o cause_v he_o to_o leave_v the_o archbishopricke_n of_o ravenna_n and_o to_o usurp_v 13._o luitprand_fw-fr l._n 2._o c._n 13._o proh_o nefas_fw-la the_o popedom_n of_o rome_n this_o history_n in_o luitprand_n be_v set_v down_o more_o ample_o and_o with_o word_n more_o scandalous_a which_o i_o willing_o spare_v to_o deliver_v 11._o frodoard_v hist_o rhemens_n l._n 4._o c._n 19_o baron_fw-fr vol._n 10._o a_o 925._o art_n 9_o 10_o 11._o this_o be_v that_o john_n who_o as_o frodoardus_n report_v to_o gratify_v rodulph_n the_o king_n create_v a_o child_n of_o five_o year_n age_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n whereupon_o baronius_n thus_o cry_v out_o thou_o see_v gentle_a reader_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o what_o pope_n this_o be_v first_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o he_o may_v be_v call_v a_o pope_n that_o be_v by_o john_n the_o ten_o who_o platina_n call_v the_o eleven_o than_o who_o there_o be_v no_o man_n more_o wicked_a who_o entrance_n into_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n be_v most_o infamous_a and_o his_o departure_n most_o execrable_a now_o marozia_n her_o daughter_n have_v lose_v her_o husband_n the_o marquesse_n albert_n not_o know_v how_o to_o live_v a_o private_a life_n marry_v herself_o to_o guido_n duke_n of_o tuscan_a with_o purpose_n to_o get_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o government_n of_o rome_n which_o albertus_n have_v and_o because_o pope_n john_n withstand_v it_o she_o persuade_v her_o husband_n to_o take_v he_o out_o of_o the_o way_n who_o afterward_o have_v cause_v his_o brother_n to_o be_v slay_v in_o his_o sight_n 12._o luitprand_fw-fr l._n 3._o c._n 12._o cast_v john_n into_o prison_n and_o smother_v he_o with_o a_o pillow_n guido_n short_o after_o die_v and_o marozia_n still_o greedy_a of_o government_n make_v a_o motion_n of_o marriage_n with_o hugh_n king_n of_o arles_n assure_v he_o the_o government_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v call_v from_o elsewhere_o into_o italy_n come_v and_o marry_v she_o and_o with_o speedy_a journey_n come_v to_o rome_n be_v admit_v without_o any_o resistance_n but_o he_o be_v otherwise_o a_o wise_a prince_n it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o when_o alberick_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o mother_n with_o less_o dexterity_n than_o be_v fit_v bring_v water_n unto_o he_o to_o wash_v his_o hand_n he_o give_v the_o young_a man_n a_o box_n on_o the_o ear_n to_o revenge_v which_o contumely_n the_o youth_n in_o a_o fury_n present_o go_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o sedition_n against_o hugh_n who_o he_o assail_a in_o the_o castle_n drive_v he_o to_o such_o a_o strait_a that_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o leap_v over_o the_o wall_n whereupon_o alberick_n both_o renew_v the_o name_n of_o consul_n in_o rome_n and_o make_v himself_o a_o consul_n change_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o government_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n alter_v the_o state_n that_o from_o thence_o forward_o for_o a_o long_a time_n the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n depend_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o so_o to_o leo_n the_o sixth_o the_o successor_n of_o john_n the_o eleven_o in_o the_o year_n 928_o 928._o an._n 928._o he_o substitute_v stephen_n the_o seven_o but_o according_a to_o onuphrius_n the_o eight_o and_o in_o the_o year_n 930_o john_n the_o twelve_o 930._o an._n 930._o the_o bastard_n son_n of_o pope_n sergius_n the_o three_o and_o of_o marozia_n get_v as_o be_v say_v before_o in_o adultery_n and_o consequent_o his_o brother_n by_o the_o mother_n side_n who_o sigonius_n not_o unfit_o say_v sedere_fw-la iussus_fw-la be_v command_v to_o take_v the_o see_v and_o again_o in_o the_o year_n 935_o he_o constitute_v leo_n the_o seven_o 935._o an._n 935._o successor_n to_o john_n the_o twelve_o 938._o an._n 938._o and_o whereas_o king_n hugh_n in_o the_o year_n 938_o have_v cause_v stephen_n the_o eight_o to_o be_v nominate_v in_o the_o place_n of_o leo_fw-la the_o seven_o the_o faction_n of_o alberick_n by_o a_o civil_a tumult_n wound_v in_o such_o sort_n his_o good_a name_n that_o be_v ashamed_a to_o show_v himself_o public_o he_o die_v with_o discontent_n in_o who_o place_n martin_n the_o second_o alias_o martin_n the_o three_o succeed_v who_o place_n four_o year_n after_o agapete_fw-it the_o second_o hold_v who_o also_o about_o the_o year_n 956_o die_a 956._o an._n 956._o the_o consul_n alberick_n be_v of_o such_o power_n and_o authority_n that_o he_o cause_v octavian_n his_o own_o son_n to_o be_v choose_v pope_n though_o young_a of_o year_n and_o a_o child_n in_o manner_n this_o man_n according_a to_o platina_n be_v john_n the_o thirteen_o according_a to_o onuphrius_n the_o twelve_o here_o baronius_n search_v into_o the_o age_n of_o octavian_n 4._o baron_fw-fr vol._n 10._o a_o 955._o art_n 2_o 3_o 4._o because_o the_o emperor_n otho_n come_v into_o italy_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v he_o be_v but_o a_o child_n and_o therefore_o may_v hereafter_o easy_o be_v change_v by_o the_o example_n of_o good_a man_n when_o he_o have_v hold_v the_o seat_n eight_o year_n his_o nativity_n be_v cast_v conclude_v that_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v be_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o alberick_n which_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v above_o eighteen_o year_n of_o age_n judge_n now_o reader_n what_o father_n of_o father_n he_o be_v to_o govern_v say_v he_o the_o spiritual_a regiment_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o so_o he_o pronounce_v he_o a_o untimely_a birth_n which_o the_o tyranny_n of_o rome_n have_v bring_v forth_o excel_v in_o power_n confound_v every_o thing_n with_o war_n dare_v and_o subvert_v all_o thing_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o by_o no_o mean_n he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a pope_n in_o who_o election_n there_o be_v no_o law_n observe_v but_o all_o thing_n carry_v by_o force_n and_o fear_v he_o that_o want_v year_n to_o be_v a_o deacon_n seem_v as_o a_o vice_n play_v the_o pope_n part_n upon_o a_o stage_n after_o all_o this_o say_v baronius_n by_o common_a consent_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v tolerate_v rather_o than_o by_o schism_n to_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o note_v withal_o that_o not_o long_o after_o he_o prefer_v he_o before_o those_o that_o be_v solemn_o choose_v in_o a_o full_a council_n but_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o hear_v what_o luitprand_n a_o eyewitness_n say_v of_o both_o the_o john_n 12._o luitprand_fw-fr l._n 3._o c._n 12._o that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v how_o far_o the_o impudency_n of_o this_o seat_n have_v proceed_v to_o john_n therefore_o the_o twelve_o beside_o what_o i_o have_v already_o allege_v of_o he_o and_o of_o marozia_n his_o mother_n he_o have_v these_o verse_n where_o she_o invit_v hugh_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o she_o to_o the_o principality_n of_o rome_n quid_fw-la veneris_fw-la facibus_fw-la compulsa_fw-la marozia_n saevis_fw-la coniugis_fw-la ecce_fw-la tui_fw-la spectas_fw-la tu_fw-la suavia_fw-la fratris_fw-la nubere_fw-la germanis_fw-la satagens_fw-la herodia_n binis_fw-la etc._n etc._n reproach_v his_o incest_n and_o again_o aduenit_fw-la optatus_fw-la ceu_fw-la bos_fw-la tibi_fw-la ductus_fw-la ad_fw-la aram_fw-la rex_fw-la hugo_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o he_o bring_v in_o alberick_n exhort_v the_o roman_n to_o shake_v off_o this_o infamous_a yoke_n with_o these_o word_n be_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n so_o besot_v as_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o government_n of_o a_o strumpet_n what_o thing_n more_o base_a more_o abominable_a than_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o incest_n of_o a_o woman_n for_o theodora_n his_o mother_n have_v make_v john_n the_o twelve_o her_o favourite_n pope_n and_o as_o for_o john_n the_o thirteen_o he_o describe_v his_o life_n not_o with_o his_o own_o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o best_a of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n witness_v raineria_n a_o widow_n of_o one_o of_o his_o soldier_n to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o government_n of_o many_o city_n the_o keep_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o gold_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o witness_n stephana_n his_o love_n who_o die_v in_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o child_n which_o she_o have_v late_o conceive_v by_o he_o and_o if_o all_o thing_n shall_v hold_v their_o peace_n the_o palace_n of_o lateran_n sometime_o the_o lodging_n of_o saint_n
attempt_n his_o fortitude_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n his_o incredible_a courage_n patience_n in_o labour_n counsel_v answerable_a to_o his_o magnanimity_n and_o his_o diligence_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o his_o age_n be_v capable_a in_o military_a affair_n his_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n a_o everlasting_a desire_n of_o peace_n care_n of_o religion_n bounty_n towards_o the_o poor_a clemency_n towards_o the_o vanquish_a benignity_n towards_o his_o friend_n benevolence_n towards_o soldier_n in_o all_o which_o he_o have_v excel_v all_o the_o german_n and_o roman_a prince_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o wicked_a tyrant_n yet_o it_o have_v be_v our_o duty_n to_o have_v obey_v he_o not_o to_o rebel_v against_o he_o and_o all_o humane_a law_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o our_o forefather_n do_v forbid_v a_o man_n adversary_n his_o enemy_n to_o be_v his_o accuser_n witness_n and_o judge_n the_o emperor_n make_v peace_n with_o hildebrand_n in_o italy_n while_o by_o the_o perfidious_a treachery_n of_o a_o few_o saxony_n fall_v from_o he_o a_o traitorous_a tyrant_n who_o receive_v due_a punishment_n for_o his_o treachery_n contemn_v all_o oath_n and_o promise_n and_o all_o affinity_n and_o kindred_n invade_v he_o at_o the_o last_o he_o conclude_v no_o man_n may_v proceed_v or_o pronounce_v sentence_n against_o a_o man_n that_o be_v deprive_v until_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o former_a estate_n see_v the_o book_n and_o read_v the_o law_n and_o so_o he_o deliver_v it_o to_o wesilus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o mence_n guebhard_n bishop_n of_o saltzbourge_n be_v for_o his_o age_n eloquence_n and_o learning_n choose_a prolocutor_n by_o the_o bishop_n that_o take_v part_n with_o hildebrand_n be_v mute_a and_o answer_v not_o a_o word_n from_o that_o time_n forward_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o prince_n of_o saxony_n abjure_v the_o sect_n of_o hildebrand_n that_o name_n they_o retain_v in_o the_o time_n of_o vrban_n and_o repent_v themselves_o of_o what_o they_o have_v do_v come_v to_o the_o emperor_n only_o fourteen_o persist_v obstinate_a therein_o who_o be_v assign_v to_o appear_v the_o month_n follow_v at_o mence_n at_o their_o day_n of_o appearance_n come_v not_o there_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n be_v present_a with_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o italy_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o sect_n of_o hildebrand_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o christian_a piety_n otho_n call_v vrban_n be_v convict_v of_o sacrilege_n and_o irreligion_n be_v excommunicate_v and_o those_o fourteen_o be_v condemn_v of_o rebellion_n perjury_n murder_n be_v depose_v moreover_o historiographer_n do_v observe_v that_o in_o one_o year_n all_o the_o bishop_n and_o prince_n die_v that_o have_v kindle_v those_o civil_a war_n wherewith_o the_o whole_a empire_n for_o the_o space_n of_o seventeen_o year_n have_v be_v set_v on_o fire_n and_o they_o recite_v they_o by_o name_n which_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1090._o comitem_fw-la an._n 1090._o waltram_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la ludovic_fw-la comitem_fw-la it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n that_o waltram_n bishop_n of_o magdeburge_n write_v a_o epistle_n to_o the_o earl_n lodowick_n who_o he_o call_v a_o glorious_a prince_n wherein_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o lawful_a king_n and_o prince_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v arm_v he_o against_o the_o impostor_n of_o that_o age_n who_o to_o woman_n and_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o people_n preach_v contrary_a doctrine_n set_v likewise_o before_o his_o eye_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o rodolph_n hildebrand_n the_o marquesse_n egbert_n and_o diverse_a other_o prince_n who_o bare_a arm_n for_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o emperor_n chron._n sigebert_n in_o chron._n at_o which_o time_n likewise_o sigebert_n speak_v of_o vrban_n choose_v against_o clement_n and_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o follow_v thereupon_o from_o hence_o say_v he_o grow_v scandal_n in_o the_o church_n and_o division_n in_o the_o state_n the_o one_o disagree_v from_o the_o other_o the_o kingdom_n from_o the_o priesthood_n one_o excommunicate_v another_o the_o one_o contemn_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o other_o either_o out_o of_o a_o preiudicat_fw-la opinion_n of_o the_o cause_n or_o the_o person_n and_o while_o the_o one_o abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o excommunicate_v against_o the_o other_o by_o do_v it_o rather_o according_a to_o his_o own_o lust_n than_o with_o any_o respect_n of_o justice_n he_o that_o give_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o looss_v be_v altogether_o contemn_v doubtless_o this_o novelty_n that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v heresy_n do_v not_o till_o now_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n that_o his_o priest_n who_o cause_v the_o hypocrite_n to_o reign_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n shall_v teach_v the_o people_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o wicked_a king_n and_o though_o by_o oath_n they_o bound_v themselves_o unto_o he_o yet_o they_o owe_v he_o no_o fidelity_n neither_o be_v they_o to_o be_v account_v perjure_a person_n who_o resist_v the_o king_n but_o rather_o to_o be_v account_v a_o excommunicate_a person_n that_o obey_v the_o king_n and_o that_o man_n to_o be_v absolve_v from_o all_o injustice_n and_o perjury_n that_o oppose_v himself_o against_o he_o other_o speak_v more_o confident_o then_o do_v there_o arise_v false_a prophet_n apostle_n priest_n who_o deceive_v the_o people_n with_o a_o false_a religion_n do_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o of_o some_o he_o make_v instance_n who_o begin_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v extol_v above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v and_o while_o they_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o power_n they_o extinguish_v all_o charity_n and_o christian_a simplicity_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o immortal_a god_n keep_v not_o always_o one_o course_n that_o no_o perjure_a person_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o best_a sort_n of_o man_n such_o as_o be_v just_a and_o honest_a and_o ingenuous_a and_o simple_a have_v leave_v in_o writing_n that_o at_o that_o time_n they_o foresee_v the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n to_o be_v beginning_n and_o those_o thing_n to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n have_v long_o before_o foretell_v sigebert_n and_o aventine_n after_o diverse_a other_o do_v note_n 5._o auent_n l._n 5._o that_o the_o prodigious_a wonder_n that_o be_v observe_v in_o those_o time_n do_v astonish_v the_o mind_n of_o most_o man_n the_o heaven_n say_v he_o see_v many_o time_n to_o burn_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n to_o lose_v their_o light_n the_o star_n to_o fall_v from_o heaven_n to_o the_o earth_n burn_v torch_n fiery_a dart_n fly_v through_o the_o air_n new_a star_n never_o see_v before_o 5._o sigebert_n in_o chron._n auent_v l._n 5._o pitch_a pavilion_n and_o army_n in_o the_o air_n encounter_v one_o another_o and_o innumerable_a the_o like_a whereby_o the_o people_n be_v confirm_v in_o their_o opininion_n but_o especial_o when_o they_o see_v the_o son_n to_o conspire_v against_o the_o state_n and_o life_n of_o his_o father_n conrade_z against_o henry_n who_o have_v appoint_v he_o to_o be_v his_o successor_n 1095._o an._n 1095._o and_o that_o by_o the_o persuasion_n compulsion_n and_o approbation_n of_o pope_n vrban_n instigate_v or_o rather_o bewitch_v by_o the_o cunning_a of_o mathilda_n his_o father_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n leave_v nothing_o undo_v that_o may_v regain_v he_o to_o his_o duty_n &_o obedience_n who_o prevail_a nothing_o by_o his_o just_a &_o gentle_a exhortation_n be_v enforce_v in_o the_o counsel_n and_o solemn_a assembly_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o beg_v vengeance_n from_o heaven_n and_o earth_n even_o with_o tear_n in_o his_o eye_n all_o this_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v cover_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o that_o sacred_a and_o plausible_a expedition_n to_o jerusalem_n the_o mystery_n whereof_o william_n of_o malmesburie_n open_v before_o unto_o we_o that_o by_o that_o mean_v vrban_n may_v recover_v his_o authority_n at_o rome_n or_o rather_o divert_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n employ_v about_o remote_a affair_n from_o those_o more_o necessary_a business_n that_o touch_v they_o more_o near_o at_o home_n that_o while_o they_o bend_v all_o their_o endeavour_n abroad_o to_o persecute_v the_o infidel_n they_o may_v neglect_v antichrist_n free_o waste_v all_o at_o home_n in_o the_o church_n neither_o want_v he_o in_o that_o impure_a and_o dark_a world_n a_o bait_n whereby_o to_o win_v and_o allure_v the_o simple_a people_n to_o that_o war_n which_o be_v a_o absolute_a absolution_n from_o all_o their_o sin_n without_o any_o penance_n what_o great_a encitement_n can_v there_o be_v to_o man_n who_o be_v to_o invade_v a_o country_n wherein_o all_o thing_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o
do_v something_o &_o win_v the_o king_n heart_n with_o many_o persuasion_n to_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o come_v again_o into_o the_o camp_n and_o come_v again_o he_o receive_v he_o integrato_fw-la officio_fw-la with_o entire_a duty_n that_o be_v he_o hold_v his_o right_a stirrup_n 20._o otho_n frise_v de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la frederici_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 20._o but_o while_o they_o all_o rejoice_v at_o it_o think_v all_o matter_n well_o adrian_z say_v unto_o they_o there_o remain_v yet_o one_o thing_n for_o your_o prince_n to_o do_v he_o must_v conquer_v apulia_n for_o saint_n peter_n which_o william_n of_o sicilia_n possess_v by_o force_n and_o that_o do_v let_v he_o come_v to_o we_o to_o be_v crown_v and_o very_o hardly_o obtain_v they_o of_o he_o to_o defer_v this_o conquest_n till_o after_o his_o coronation_n the_o act_n of_o the_o vatican_n produce_v by_o baronius_n sequent_a baron_fw-fr a_o 1155_o art_n 8._o &_o sequent_a do_v only_o say_v that_o frederick_n refuse_v to_o hold_v the_o stirrup_n &_o in_o the_o end_n be_v bring_v to_o do_v it_o stregulam_fw-la say_v they_o fortiter_fw-la tenuit_fw-la that_o otherwise_o adrian_n will_v not_o receive_v his_o kiss_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o adrian_n that_o say_v to_o covet_v the_o popedom_n be_v not_o to_o succeed_v s._n peter_n in_o feed_v the_o sheep_n but_o romulus_n in_o commit_v parricide_n because_o a_o man_n can_v attain_v thereto_o without_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o now_o he_o be_v enter_v be_v as_o hot_a in_o the_o business_n as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n 9_o anton._n ex_fw-la joh._n sarisbur_n &_o halinando_n part._n 2._o tit._n 17._o c._n 1._o §_o 9_o now_o frederick_n at_o the_o last_o have_v recover_v his_o good_a favour_n arnold_n be_v apprehend_v in_o tuscan_a by_o the_o servant_n of_o adrian_n and_o deliver_v unto_o he_o and_o be_v condemn_v under_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n and_o burn_v alive_a and_o his_o ash_n cast_v into_o the_o river_n tiber._n but_o when_o frederick_n return_v into_o germany_n either_o because_o of_o the_o hot_a season_n of_o the_o canicular_a day_n which_o the_o german_n can_v not_o well_o endure_v or_o for_o the_o cold_a satisfaction_n he_o have_v receive_v from_o adrian_n or_o some_o other_o affair_n call_v he_o back_o thither_o adrian_n in_o his_o absence_n make_v so_o good_a use_n of_o his_o opportunity_n that_o william_n duke_n of_o calabria_n and_o king_n of_o sicilia_n who_o have_v undertake_v the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n in_o his_o land_n by_o the_o rebellion_n that_o he_o stir_v up_o of_o the_o lord_n his_o subject_n against_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o fall_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v himself_o his_o liege_n vassal_n and_o so_o this_o success_n beside_o his_o natural_a disposition_n raise_v up_o his_o heat_n against_o frederick_n upon_o the_o first_o occasion_n offer_v a_o bishop_n of_o london_n then_o be_v take_v by_o robber_n in_o germany_n and_o it_o seem_v unto_o adrian_n that_o frederick_n stir_v not_o in_o it_o as_o he_o ought_v who_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v at_o bezanson_n in_o bourgondie_n whither_o he_o be_v come_v to_o marry_v beatrice_n the_o earl_n daughter_n he_o send_v to_o he_o his_o legate_n the_o cardinal_n rowland_n &_o bernard_n with_o his_o letter_n of_o complaint_n or_o rather_o of_o reproach_n for_o that_o he_o ill_o remember_v say_v he_o 12._o radcuicus_n canonic_a frise_v l._n 1._o c._n 10._o sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la jtal._n l._n 12._o quanto_fw-la study_v imperialis_fw-la coronae_fw-la insigne_fw-la tibi_fw-la contulerimus_fw-la with_o what_o affection_n we_o have_v give_v he_o the_o imperial_a crown_n &_o beneficia_fw-la and_o the_o good_a turn_n or_o rather_o benefit_n thus_o say_v mild_o sigonius_n but_o radevicus_n a_o author_n of_o that_o time_n canon_n of_o frisingen_n produce_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o letter_n in_o rough_a term_n remember_v thou_o quantam_fw-la tibi_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la plenitudinem_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la contulit_fw-la mater_fw-la tua_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la what_o ample_a dignity_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v bestow_v upon_o thou_o and_o that_o thou_o have_v receive_v from_o her_o hand_n maiora_fw-la beneficia_fw-la the_o great_a benefit_n that_o may_v be_v clause_n which_o proper_o offend_v the_o prince_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o emperor_n hold_v the_o empire_n by_o homage_n of_o he_o and_o that_o the_o empire_n be_v his_o fee._n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o say_v radevicus_n do_v they_o hold_v themselves_o to_o the_o strict_a interpretation_n of_o his_o word_n because_o they_o know_v that_o the_o roman_n rash_o affirm_v that_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o realm_n of_o italy_n have_v not_o be_v possess_v till_o then_o by_o our_o king_n but_o of_o the_o donation_n of_o pope_n which_o they_o be_v not_o content_v only_o to_o say_v but_o represent_v in_o writing_n and_o picture_n and_o so_o convey_v to_o posterity_n insomuch_o say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v write_v over_o a_o certain_a picture_n of_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n which_o be_v set_v up_o at_o the_o palace_n of_o lateran_n rex_fw-la venit_fw-la ante_fw-la fores_fw-la iurans_fw-la prius_fw-la vrbis_fw-la honores_fw-la post_fw-la homo_fw-la fit_a papae_fw-la sumit_fw-la quo_fw-la dante_o coronam_fw-la the_o king_n before_o his_o gate_n do_v come_v which_o swear_v first_o to_o the_o town_n who_o both_o the_o pope_n his_o servant_n make_v and_o after_o he_o do_v crown_n that_o after_o he_o have_v take_v his_o oath_n he_o be_v make_v the_o pope_n servant_n and_o receive_v the_o crown_n in_o gift_n of_o he_o when_o frederick_n be_v tell_v of_o this_o picture_n be_v then_o about_o rome_n he_o complain_v thereof_o to_o adrian_n who_o promise_v he_o to_o cause_v both_o the_o writing_n and_o picture_n to_o be_v take_v away_o lest_o so_o vain_a a_o thing_n shall_v give_v matter_n of_o strife_n and_o discord_n between_o two_o the_o great_a person_n in_o the_o world_n and_o indeed_o that_o such_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o adrian_n appear_v by_o his_o own_o letter_n to_o arnulph_n archbishop_n of_o mence_n frederick_n of_o cologne_n and_o hillin_n of_o trever_n in_o these_o word_n 6._o auent_n l._n 6._o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o greek_n to_o the_o german_n so_o as_o that_o their_o king_n be_v not_o call_v emperor_n till_o after_o he_o be_v crown_v by_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o consecration_n he_o be_v king_n after_o he_o be_v emperor_n whence_o have_v he_o then_o the_o empire_n but_o from_o we_o from_o the_o election_n of_o his_o prince_n he_o have_v the_o name_n of_o king_n from_o our_o consecration_n the_o name_n of_o emperor_n of_o augustus_n and_o caesar_n from_o we_o than_o he_o have_v the_o empire_n call_v to_o mind_n antiquity_n zacharie_n advance_v charles_n and_o give_v he_o a_o great_a name_n that_o he_o may_v be_v emperor_n to_o the_o end_n that_o from_o thenceforth_o for_o ever_o the_o king_n of_o germany_n may_v be_v a_o advocate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v &_o that_o apulia_n by_o he_o reduce_v may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v we_o with_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o the_o emperor_n for_o rome_n be_v our_o seat_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v aix_n in_o ardenna_n all_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v he_o hold_v of_o us._n as_o zacharie_n translate_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o the_o german_n so_o may_v we_o from_o the_o german_n to_o the_o greek_n behold_v it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o give_v it_o to_o who_o we_o will_v and_o for_o this_o be_v we_o establish_v of_o god_n over_o nation_n and_o over_o kingdom_n for_o to_o destroy_v and_o pluck_v up_o to_o build_v and_o to_o plant_v etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o see_v the_o enterprise_n of_o adrian_n it_o remain_v for_o we_o to_o show_v what_o frederick_n do_v thereupon_o without_o forget_v by_o the_o way_n that_o this_o be_v that_o adrian_n who_o write_v to_o henry_n king_n of_o england_n westmonaster_n adrian_n epist_n ad_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la henr._n apud_fw-la matth._n westmonaster_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o ireland_n and_o all_o island_n on_o which_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v shine_v by_o right_a appertain_v to_o saint_n peter_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o that_o he_o shall_v honourable_o receive_v he_o thither_o without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o say_a right_n and_o namely_o pay_v he_o a_o penny_n pension_n by_o the_o year_n for_o every_o household_n opposition_n 35_o krantz_n l._n 6._o c._n 35_o so_o soon_o as_o frederick_n have_v see_v that_o picture_n of_o lotharius_n do_v homage_n he_o sudden_o turn_v away_o his_o sight_n and_o fret_v at_o it_o without_o speak_v a_o word_n for_o there_o be_v innocent_a the_o second_o sit_v in_o his_o pontifical_a chair_n
from_o that_o we_o read_v before_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n cologne_n &_o trever_n then_o they_o present_v their_o letter_n which_o frederick_n give_v to_o otho_n bishop_n of_o frisingen_n to_o interpret_v the_o tenor_n whereof_o we_o may_v read_v in_o radevicus_n full_a of_o submission_n satisfaction_n &_o reverence_n the_o particular_a clause_n be_v by_o occasion_n of_o the_o word_n beneficium_fw-la thy_o heart_n as_o i_o be_o inform_v have_v be_v move_v which_o true_o ought_v not_o to_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o inferior_a nor_o yet_o of_o so_o great_a a_o man_n for_o although_o the_o word_n beneficium_fw-la be_v take_v by_o some_o in_o another_o signification_n yet_o it_o shall_v then_o have_v be_v take_v as_o we_o mean_v it_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n it_o have_v from_o his_o original_n for_o it_o be_v compose_v of_o bonum_fw-la &_o factum_fw-la and_o with_o we_o we_o call_v beneficium_fw-la non_fw-la feudum_fw-la not_o a_o fee_n but_o bonum_fw-la factum_fw-la a_o good_a action_n in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o body_n of_o holy_a scripture_n where_o it_o be_v read_v that_o we_o be_v govern_v and_o nourish_v ex_fw-la beneficio_fw-la dei_fw-la by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n non_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ex_fw-la feudo_fw-la not_o as_o by_o a_o fee_n but_o by_o his_o blessing_n and_o so_o your_o magnificence_n know_v that_o we_o have_v so_o honourable_o set_v the_o sign_n of_o imperial_a dignity_n on_o your_o head_n that_o all_o man_n may_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v ut_fw-la bonum_fw-la factum_fw-la as_o a_o good_a deed_n or_o a_o good_a action_n and_o thus_o correct_v he_o not_o only_o his_o former_a letter_n but_o also_o the_o inscription_n of_o the_o picture_n of_o innocent_a the_o second_o post_fw-la homo_fw-la fit_a papae_fw-la he_o be_v make_v the_o pope_n vassal_n he_o proceed_v some_o have_v also_o turn_v these_o word_n to_o another_o sense_n contulimus_fw-la tibi_fw-la insigne_fw-la imperialis_fw-la coronae_fw-la we_o have_v give_v thou_o the_o sign_n of_o imperial_a dignity_n he_o have_v say_v more_o harsh_o plenitudinem_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la the_o fullness_n of_o dignity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whole_a dignity_n but_o without_o cause_n and_o of_o set_a purpose_n because_o they_o love_v not_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o of_o the_o church_n for_o by_o this_o word_n contulimus_fw-la we_o understand_v nothing_o but_o imposuimus_fw-la we_o have_v set_v it_o upon_o thy_o head_n 13._o radevicus_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 13._o and_o thereby_o he_o renounce_v also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o verse_n of_o innocent_a sumit_fw-la quo_fw-la dante_o coronam_fw-la that_o the_o emperor_n receive_v the_o crown_n in_o gift_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o this_o mild_a interpretation_n of_o grammar_n frederick_n be_v appease_v who_o moreover_o declare_v unto_o the_o legate_n and_o give_v they_o in_o write_v certain_a article_n in_o default_n of_o which_o a_o seed_n of_o discord_n will_v continue_v betwixt_o they_o to_o which_o they_o promise_v the_o pope_n shall_v satisfy_v be_v in_o no_o manner_n willing_a to_o derogat_n from_o his_o royal_a dignity_n so_o for_o this_o time_n he_o yield_v they_o peace_n and_o note_v here_o with_o what_o faithfulness_n the_o same_o be_v do_v 6._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1158._o art_n 6._o adrian_n say_v baronius_n do_v it_o in_o wisdom_n for_o to_o give_v place_n to_o wrath_n interpret_n also_o this_o word_n beneficium_fw-la for_o to_z avoid_v discord_n and_o not_o in_o good_a earnest_n 1158._o an._n 1158._o for_o these_o thing_n can_v not_o long_o subsist_v this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1158._o and_o nevertheless_o frederick_n pass_v the_o alps_n for_o to_o appease_v the_o rebellion_n of_o lombardie_n and_o to_o refresh_v his_o army_n not_o long_o after_o he_o lead_v it_o into_o the_o pope_n land_n whereby_o arise_v again_o a_o new_a quarrel_n it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n say_v otho_n bishop_n of_o frisingen_n 13._o otho_fw-la frisingen_n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o since_o the_o time_n that_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v derive_v to_o the_o frenchman_n until_o this_o present_a that_o so_o often_o as_o the_o king_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o enter_v into_o italy_n they_o send_v some_o of_o their_o servant_n afore_o be_v man_n of_o understanding_n who_o visit_v every_o city_n and_o town_n demand_v those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n revenue_n which_o the_o inhabitant_n call_v fodrum_n whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o at_o the_o prince_n come_v the_o city_n town_n and_o castle_n which_o either_o altogether_o refuse_v to_o pay_v the_o same_o or_o do_v not_o whole_o pay_v it_o be_v oftentimes_o raze_v even_o with_o the_o ground_n for_o a_o example_n to_o posterity_n another_o justice_n also_o follow_v from_o ancient_a custom_n that_o the_o prince_n enter_v into_o italy_n all_o dignity_n &_o magistracy_n cease_v and_o all_o matter_n be_v order_v ad_fw-la ipsius_fw-la nutum_fw-la according_a to_o the_o law_n &_o judgement_n of_o the_o lawyer_n 15._o radevicus_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 15._o when_o frederick_n therefore_o by_o his_o officer_n think_v to_o use_v these_o right_n namely_o in_o fodro_n colligendo_fw-la adrian_n begin_v through_o the_o instigation_n of_o some_o to_o be_v grievous_o offend_v say_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v evil_a for_o good_a and_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v ingrateful_a for_o his_o benefit_n especial_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o as_o well_o the_o city_n and_o lord_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o royalty_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o thereupon_o he_o write_v letter_n unto_o he_o in_o show_n mild_a but_o in_o deed_n be_v well_o consider_v full_a of_o sharp_a reproof_n which_o he_o present_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o vild_a and_o base_a messenger_n who_o before_o they_o be_v red_a be_v sudden_o vanish_v at_o this_o frederic_n be_v again_o great_o move_v and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o a_o little_a before_o he_o have_v refuse_v at_o his_o request_n to_o confirm_v wydo_n son_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o blandrara_n in_o the_o place_n of_o anselme_n archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n be_v by_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n choose_v thereunto_o under_o pretence_n that_o he_o be_v sub-deacon_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o can_v not_o be_v translate_v to_o any_o other_o church_n without_o his_o command_n although_o adrian_n in_o many_o other_o thing_n &_o of_o great_a importance_n dispense_v withal_o as_o it_o please_v he_o wherefore_o nevertheless_o resolve_v to_o try_v he_o in_o this_o yet_o once_o more_o by_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o verde_v with_o very_o honourable_a letter_n be_v again_o refuse_v he_o therefore_o then_o command_v his_o secretary_n that_o thenceforth_o in_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n 18._o radevicus_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 18._o nomen_fw-la suum_fw-la praeferrens_fw-la romani_fw-la episcopi_fw-la subsecundet_fw-la he_o shall_v set_v his_o name_n first_o and_o the_o pope_n afterward_o and_o shall_v speak_v to_o he_o only_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n add_v that_o either_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o write_v unto_o he_o after_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o predecessor_n or_o else_o not_o think_v it_o strange_a if_o he_o follow_v in_o his_o letter_n the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o prince_n adrian_n be_v not_o please_v at_o this_o &_o therefore_o admonish_v he_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o give_v due_a reverence_n to_o s._n peter_n redemaund_v of_o he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o royalty_n and_o other_o right_n abovesayd_a frederic_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v follow_v the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n that_o bishop_n shall_v render_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n belong_v unto_o caesar_n 18._o sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la jtal._n l._n 12._o radevicus_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 18._o for_o his_o cardinal_n he_o have_v shut_v the_o gate_n of_o city_n against_o they_o because_o they_o come_v non_fw-la ad_fw-la praedicandum_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la praedandum_fw-la not_o to_o preach_v but_o to_o make_v spoil_n and_o to_o increase_v this_o mischief_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o letter_n of_o adrian_n be_v intercept_v write_v to_o they_o of_o milan_n and_o some_o other_o city_n whereby_o he_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o rebellion_n against_o frederic_n 30._o radevicus_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 30._o and_o thereupon_o also_o frederic_n send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o rome_n to_o the_o senate_n and_o people_n then_o adrian_n grow_v very_o impatient_a send_v four_o cardinal_n to_o frederic_n at_o bononia_n who_o post_n lene_n principium_fw-la after_o a_o gentle_a beginning_n propound_v unto_o he_o these_o hard_a article_n that_o he_o shall_v unknown_a to_o he_o send_v no_o more_o messenger_n to_o rome_n see_v all_o the_o magistrate_n there_o be_v of_o s._n peter_n with_o all_o the_o royalty_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o collect_v the_o fodrum_n of_o the_o domain_v of_o the_o church_n except_o in_o the_o time_n when_o he_o come_v to_o
italy_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n and_o those_o that_o take_v his_o part_n namely_o the_o milanese_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n innocent_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1216_o and_o otho_n in_o the_o year_n 1218_o who_o as_o a_o argument_n of_o repentance_n leave_v by_o testament_n the_o ensign_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o young_a frederic_n krantzius_n speak_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o discord_n between_o otho_n and_o innocent_n although_o for_o the_o most_o part_n incline_v towards_o the_o pope_n 34._o krantz_n l._n ●_o c._n 33._o &_o 34._o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n demand_v through_o italy_n the_o ancient_a right_n of_o the_o empire_n whereof_o long_o since_o some_o of_o they_o be_v transfer_v to_o the_o church_n he_o also_o challenge_v that_o great_a inheritance_n of_o mathilda_n a_o woman_n of_o great_a estate_n in_o italy_n as_o appertain_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o double_a right_n for_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o his_o aunt_n who_o descend_v from_o the_o marquess_n of_o saxony_n and_o also_o as_o fall_v to_o the_o empire_n for_o want_v of_o heir_n and_o hereupon_o innocent_a say_v he_o exhort_v the_o prince_n elector_n that_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v cast_v off_o otho_n first_o excommunicate_v and_o then_o depose_v to_o choose_v unto_o the_o empire_n another_o prince_n offer_v unto_o they_o frederic_n of_o the_o age_n of_o 20_o year_n of_o who_o although_o he_o have_v the_o administration_n of_o his_o gardenship_n he_o covert_v all_o to_o his_o own_o profit_n for_o the_o continuor_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n say_v frederic_n be_v yet_o a_o child_n and_o a_o pupil_n 10._o continuator_fw-la belli_fw-la sacri_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 10._o be_v deprive_v by_o innocent_a his_o tutor_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o be_v free_a be_v make_v tributorie_a without_o respect_n either_o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o henry_n his_o father_n or_o constance_n his_o mother_n or_o his_o own_o promise_n make_v unto_o they_o 6._o blond_n decad._n 2._o l._n 6._o blondus_n note_v two_o bold_a decree_n of_o this_o pope_n the_o first_o so_o often_o as_o one_o prince_n shall_v offend_v another_o that_o the_o correction_n shall_v belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o england_n and_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o decretal_n the_o second_o that_o two_o strive_v for_o the_o empire_n have_v voice_n alike_o venerabilem_fw-la extra_n de_fw-fr election_n c._n venerabilem_fw-la he_o who_o the_o pope_n allow_v shall_v be_v prefer_v which_o be_v there_o red_a and_o put_v in_o practice_n in_o favour_n of_o otho_n the_o four_o and_o ought_v to_o be_v receyve_v as_o lawful_a &_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v make_v the_o arbitrator_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o the_o book_n especial_o write_v by_o himself_o do_v testify_v how_o much_o this_o mystery_n do_v prick_v he_o forward_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o papae_fw-la innocentius_n 3._o ser_n in_o festo_fw-la syluestri_n papae_fw-la use_v the_o globe_n in_o sign_n of_o empire_n the_o globe_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o empire_n &_o use_v the_o mytre_n in_o sign_n of_o his_o popedom_n but_o the_o mytre_n he_o use_v always_o and_o every_o where_n but_o the_o kingdom_n neither_o every_o where_n nor_o always_o because_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o the_o worthy_a and_o further_o spread_v than_o the_o imperial_a for_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o priesthood_n go_v before_o the_o kingdom_n when_o aaron_n the_o first_o priest_n go_v before_o saul_n the_o first_o king_n papae_fw-la jdem_fw-la serm._n 1._o in_o festo_fw-la gregorij_fw-la papae_fw-la noah_n also_o be_v before_o nembroth_n when_o of_o he_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o babylon_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o nembroth_n but_o noah_n build_v a_o altar_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o it_o but_o speak_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o king_n he_o call_v the_o priest_n god_n and_o the_o king_n prince_n from_o the_o god_n he_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o detract_v and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n thou_o shall_v not_o curse_v and_o when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o king_n all_o humane_a creature_n be_v you_o subject_a even_o for_o god_n cause_n to_o your_o king_n as_o the_o most_o excellent_a or_o to_o you_o leader_n as_o send_v by_o he_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o hieremie_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o anatoth_o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pull_v down_o and_o destroy_v build_v and_o plant_v etc._n etc._n but_o to_o peter_n especial_o he_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v head_n wherein_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o sense_n consist_v who_o do_v ever_o read_v such_o divinity_n and_o yet_o behold_v there_o be_v worse_o when_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n say_v unto_o s._n peter_n duc_n in_o altum_fw-la petri._n jdem_fw-la in_o serm._n 2._o de_fw-fr festo_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri._n cast_v into_o the_o deep_a this_o deep_a sea_n be_v rome_n which_o obtain_v and_o hold_v the_o priority_n and_o principality_n above_o all_o the_o world_n as_o if_o he_o say_v go_v to_o rome_n and_o transport_v thyself_o with_o all_o thou_o to_o the_o city_n there_o cast_v thy_o net_n abroad_o to_o take_v in_o another_o place_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n owe_v not_o any_o reverence_n to_o any_o person_n but_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v no_o superior_a but_o god_n but_o yet_o see_v here_o his_o companion_n and_o corrival_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o spouse_n and_o yet_o bring_v in_o other_o church_n subject_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v the_o first_o that_o i_o know_v that_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o call_v himself_o the_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n arrogate_a to_o himself_o the_o true_a and_o incommunicable_a title_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v the_o true_a and_o only_a spouse_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v her_o spouse_n nor_o the_o pope_n her_o spouse_n 237._o bernard_n ad_fw-la eugen_n epist_n 237._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a spouse_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o s._n bernard_n say_v write_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n it_o remain_v now_o that_o thou_o take_v care_n that_o the_o spouse_n of_o thy_o lord_n who_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o be_v make_v the_o better_a by_o thou_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o spouse_n thou_o shall_v not_o call_v his_o belove_a my_o princess_n but_o princess_n challenge_v nothing_o to_o thyself_o in_o she_o unless_o if_o occasion_n be_v to_o give_v thy_o life_n for_o she_o if_o christ_n have_v send_v thou_o thou_o must_v make_v account_n thou_o be_v send_v to_o serve_v and_o not_o to_o be_v serve_v can_v a_o man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_o excuse_v by_o that_o poor_a distinction_n of_o bellarmine_n 31._o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr romano_n pontif_n l._n 2._o 31._o of_o a_o principal_a or_o subaltern_a spouse_n i_o omit_v his_o comparison_n of_o the_o two_o light_n which_o god_n have_v place_v in_o the_o firmament_n the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n the_o sun_n he_o compare_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o moon_n to_o the_o emperor_n for_o doubtless_o he_o that_o fear_v not_o to_o violat_a the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o king_n of_o king_n we_o may_v think_v he_o will_v little_o spare_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o true_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o this_o spiritual_a authority_n he_o require_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o temporal_a homage_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n for_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n between_o the_o bishop_n suffragans_fw-la of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n and_o the_o monk_n touch_v the_o election_n of_o the_o archbishop_n the_o monk_n pretend_v that_o they_o only_o ought_v to_o choose_v he_o and_o the_o bishop_n say_v they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o they_o both_o of_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n innocent_n persuade_v the_o proctor_n of_o the_o monk_n to_o choose_v stephen_n lanthon_n a_o cardinal_n priest_n his_o servant_n and_o albeit_o they_o protest_v they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o the_o king_n and_o their_o convent_n be_v overbear_v with_o his_o threat_n of_o excommunication_n he_o overcome_v they_o and_o pronounce_v sentence_n for_o the_o monk_n against_o the_o bishop_n give_v the_o monk_n likewise_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v excommunicate_a they_o if_o they_o obey_v not_o his_o decree_n king_n john_n who_o then_o reign_v be_v much_o offend_v as_o well_o because_o innocent_n have_v say_v 216._o math._n paris_n in_o johan_n p._n 216._o that_o it_o be_v
word_n we_o severe_o prohibit_v this_o error_n 3_o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o and_o excommunicate_a the_o maintainer_n and_o defender_n thereof_o as_o man_n say_v our_o author_n that_o dare_v touch_v the_o holy_a hill_n to_o be_v oppress_v with_o god_n glory_n and_o that_o rash_o endeavour_n to_o search_v out_o the_o inscrutable_a secret_n of_o god_n and_o be_v presumptuous_o inquisitive_a into_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o be_v like_o bottomless_a depth_n afterward_o the_o author_n also_o note_v in_o diverse_a place_n how_o they_o labour_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v to_o overthrow_v the_o parisian_a academy_n to_o who_o law_n and_o statute_n they_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v subject_a since_o they_o be_v make_v confessor_n and_o counsellor_n to_o king_n the_o student_n therefore_o be_v constrain_v to_o contribute_v and_o make_v a_o collection_n every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o mean_n to_o send_v to_o rome_n and_o every_o one_o week_n allowance_n be_v cut_v short_a but_o they_o find_v the_o pope_n adverse_a to_o their_o project_n as_o also_o the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o same_o stamp_n who_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o mendicant_n augment_v the_o number_n of_o divinity_n doctor_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v in_o by_o mean_n of_o which_o schism_n the_o university_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o a_o dissipation_n what_o be_v the_o effect_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o these_o turbulency_n will_v afterward_o more_o manifest_o appear_v concern_v the_o waldense_n they_o do_v so_o spread_v abroad_o both_o in_o france_n and_o germany_n that_o throughout_o the_o course_n of_o all_o history_n we_o may_v as_o it_o be_v discern_v their_o print_n and_o footstep_n and_o also_o in_o lombardie_n where_o petrus_n veronensis_n a_o dominican_n use_v all_o rigour_n of_o inquisition_n against_o those_o who_o be_v call_v credentes_fw-la believer_n indict_v upon_o they_o all_o kind_n of_o severe_a punishment_n when_o seize_v on_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a he_o be_v find_v slay_v in_o the_o territory_n of_o milan_n one_o carinus_n be_v apprehend_v for_o this_o slaughter_n who_o notwithstanding_o the_o ten_o day_n after_o be_v dismiss_v by_o the_o praetor_n as_o guiltless_a and_o petrus_n veronensis_n lest_o other_o shall_v be_v discourage_v canonize_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o saint_n but_o we_o must_v not_o omit_v to_o mention_v how_o innocent_a though_o he_o employ_v much_o labour_n and_o study_v to_o this_o end_n and_o in_o authorise_v his_o decretal_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n can_v ever_o effect_v that_o the_o french_a church_n will_v be_v subject_a to_o they_o as_o concern_v the_o canon_n they_o rest_v in_o the_o ancient_a collection_n of_o they_o which_o common_o be_v call_v corpus_fw-la canonum_fw-la and_o for_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o approve_v of_o none_o but_o till_o gregory_n the_o second_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o boniface_n archbishop_n of_o magunce_n infringe_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a synod_n about_o the_o year_n 742_o which_o be_v so_o sound_a and_o good_a law_n 42._o johannes_n andreas_n in_o prologun_n l._n 1._o nichol._n 1._o ad_fw-la episc_n in_o gallia_n constitutos_fw-la in_o epist_n bonifacij_fw-la l._n 3._o epist_n 42._o that_o john_n andreas_n a_o famous_a civilian_n testify_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o decretal_n that_o whosoever_o cite_v any_o thing_n not_o conceive_v within_o this_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n he_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o criminal_a of_o false_a testimony_n the_o which_o be_v far_o from_o that_o opinion_n which_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o hold_v in_o the_o nineteenth_o distinction_n above_o by_o we_o mention_v 53._o progression_n alexander_n the_o four_o succeed_v innocent_a he_o treat_v with_o richard_n earl_n of_o cornwall_n and_o with_o the_o king_n of_o england_n for_o his_o son_n edmond_n investiture_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o apulia_n and_o sicily_n conradinus_n pretend_a emperor_n and_o frederick_n duke_n of_o austria_n not_o much_o differ_v in_o year_n be_v both_o behead_v in_o the_o market_n place_n of_o naples_n a_o duel_n appoint_v between_o peter_n king_n of_o arragon_n and_o charles_n of_o anjou_n diverse_a succession_n of_o pope_n pope_n innocent_a die_v at_o naples_n the_o governor_n shut_v the_o gate_n and_o enjoin_v the_o cardinal_n to_o choose_v a_o successor_n this_o be_v renaldus_n of_o anagnia_n cardinal_n of_o hostia_fw-la who_o be_v call_v alexander_n the_o four_o this_o man_n whether_o out_o of_o the_o late_a vision_n move_v he_o or_o his_o own_o natural_a instinct_n thereto_o incline_v give_v great_a hope_n of_o better_a regiment_n which_o principal_o be_v conceive_v from_o this_o because_o after_o his_o arrival_n he_o solicit_v in_o general_a by_o letter_n to_o make_v prayer_n in_o his_o behalf_n unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v fit_a and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o his_o other_o successor_n say_v matthew_n never_o use_v any_o such_o custom_n as_o also_o for_o that_o in_o his_o letter_n especial_o in_o those_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n a_o copy_n whereof_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o aventine_n 3_o auent_n l._n 7._o matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o he_o sharp_o rebuke_v their_o abuse_n and_o vice_n but_o say_v matthew_n give_v too_o much_o ear_n to_o the_o imposterous_a whisper_n of_o flatterer_n and_o to_o the_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o man_n avaricious_a that_o be_v to_o his_o cardinal_n his_o simplicity_n be_v sudden_o divert_v and_o mislead_v and_o his_o bull_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o earnest_n and_o testimony_n of_o papal_a integrity_n come_v to_o be_v term_v unexpected_a fraud_n although_o in_o these_o point_n also_o i_o can_v excuse_v he_o that_o rely_v on_o the_o advice_n of_o some_o in_o who_o he_o be_v most_o confident_a and_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o four_o his_o predecessor_n who_o on_o his_o death_n bed_v animate_v the_o cardinal_n thereunto_o in_o that_o he_o powerful_o determine_v to_o continue_v the_o war_n begin_v against_o frederick_n partaker_n especial_o against_o manfred_n frederick_n natural_a son_n the_o which_o resolution_n be_v pretend_v with_o devotion_n and_o piety_n because_o nocera_n a_o city_n of_o calabria_n be_v then_o hold_v by_o the_o saracen_n and_o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v the_o king_n of_o england_n shall_v so_o soon_o discover_v the_o fraud_n intend_v to_o he_o a_o legate_n be_v send_v which_o by_o a_o ring_n invest_v edmond_n his_o son_n king_n of_o apulia_n and_o sicilia_n and_o this_o incircumspect_a prince_n think_v that_o he_o both_o possess_v the_o city_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o subject_n too_o wherefore_o he_o present_o set_v forward_o on_o his_o journey_n take_v care_n for_o nothing_o but_o how_o he_o may_v convey_v his_o treasure_n through_o france_n present_o after_o another_o legate_n call_v rustand_v be_v send_v to_o demand_v a_o ten_o in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n as_o also_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o absolve_v the_o king_n of_o his_o vow_n of_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n so_o he_o will_v commence_v a_o war_n against_o manfred_n thus_o this_o credulous_a prince_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v delude_v with_o these_o art_n nay_o and_o rustand_v moreover_o both_o in_o london_n and_o other_o city_n preach_v the_o cross_n against_o manfred_n in_o express_a word_n and_o christian_n wonder_v say_v the_o author_n when_o they_o hear_v he_o promise_n as_o large_o unto_o they_o for_o the_o effusion_n of_o christian_a blood_n as_o sometime_o he_o do_v for_o kill_v of_o infidel_n and_o the_o preacher_n instability_n move_v mockery_n and_o laughter_n as_o also_o on_o a_o certain_a day_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o sermon_n not_o doubt_v to_o add_v be_v son_n of_o obedience_n and_o wherein_o shall_v this_o consist_v i_o pray_v you_o why_o be_v bind_v to_o such_o or_o such_o a_o merchant_n in_o such_o or_o such_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n but_o now_o observe_v the_o catastrophe_n manfred_n defeat_v the_o pope_n force_n in_o apulia_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n understanding_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v constitute_v they_o a_o foreign_a king_n unknown_a to_o their_o nobility_n as_o also_o that_o the_o croisadoe_n be_v divert_v from_o their_o first_o end_n and_o employ_v against_o they_o as_o infidel_n they_o all_o repair_v to_o manfred_n yea_o even_o they_o who_o before_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n partiality_n raise_v against_o he_o a_o mighty_a army_n wherefore_o say_v our_o author_n the_o usual_a respect_n and_o devotion_n bear_v by_o the_o prelate_n and_o people_n towards_o our_o mother_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o our_o lord_n our_o father_n and_o shepherd_n the_o pope_n be_v almost_o expire_v for_o though_o that_o court_n have_v many_o time_n with_o great_a bitterness_n of_o spirit_n terrify_v christ_n faithful_a one_o yet_o it_o never_o so_o mortal_o
who_o testify_v that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o profession_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o that_o their_o doctor_n be_v come_v unto_o they_o out_o of_o bohemia_n namely_o from_o those_o first_o who_o many_o age_n before_o as_o we_o have_v show_v settle_v themselves_o in_o those_o part_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o court_n wherein_o they_o be_v judge_v that_o they_o be_v of_o good_a manner_n grave_n modest_a abhor_v lie_v perjury_n and_o other_o vice_n which_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o to_o their_o great_a commendation_n do_v testify_v 2._o walsingham_n in_o hypodeigmate_n neustirae_fw-la &_o in_o henrico_n 2._o idem_fw-la in_o richard_n 2._o as_o also_o do_v the_o writer_n of_o the_o english_a history_n in_o the_o year_n 1401_o speak_v of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o lollard_n impute_v to_o they_o the_o same_o doctrine_n as_o to_o the_o waldense_n howsoever_o other_o malicious_o disguise_v the_o same_o and_o by_o that_o name_n be_v especial_o call_v the_o disciple_n of_o wickliff_n who_o have_v draw_v many_o after_o they_o from_o the_o year_n 1389._o moreover_o their_o priest_n say_v he_o more_o pontificum_fw-la after_o the_o manner_n of_o bishop_n 1401._o an._n 1401._o create_v new_a priest_n affirm_v that_o every_o priest_n have_v as_o much_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o looss_v and_o to_o administer_v other_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o give_v or_o can_v give_v 61._o progression_n of_o benedict_n the_o thirteen_o and_o innocent_a the_o seven_o and_o of_o the_o faith_n they_o promise_v before_o they_o enter_v the_o popedom_n &_o how_o they_o afterward_o perform_v the_o same_o of_o the_o contention_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o roman_n the_o solemn_a oath_n take_v by_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o to_o procure_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o he_o perform_v the_o same_o and_o of_o the_o sundry_a shift_n of_o the_o say_v gregory_n to_o avoid_v the_o meeting_n of_o benedict_n touch_v the_o union_n the_o cardinal_n call_v a_o council_n at_o pisa_n and_o with_o the_o help_n of_o prince_n depose_v benedict_n and_o gregory_n from_o the_o popedom_n the_o preposterous_a and_o prodigious_a entrance_n of_o john_n the_o 23._o into_o the_o popedom_n and_o his_o most_o infamous_a departure_n to_o boniface_n in_o his_o obedience_n succeed_v cosmarus_fw-la cardinal_n de_fw-la s._n cruse_n name_v innocent_a the_o seven_o but_o before_o they_o proceed_v to_o election_n the_o cardinal_n take_v a_o solemn_a oath_n that_o whosoever_o be_v choose_v pope_n for_o the_o better_a effect_v of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v renounce_v the_o popedom_n whensoever_o he_o be_v request_v thereto_o on_o condition_n that_o peter_n de_fw-fr luna_n call_v benedict_n the_o thirteen_o create_v in_o auignion_n do_v yield_v to_o perform_v the_o like_a oath_n thus_o have_v we_o here_o two_o rival_n benedict_n the_o thirteen_o and_o innocent_a the_o seven_o benedict_n when_o he_o be_v legate_n in_o spain_n before_o the_o king_n prince_n prelate_n clergy_n and_o people_n blame_v open_o clement_n to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o university_n of_o paris_n protest_v in_o his_o sermon_n 33._o theodor._n a_o nigh_o l._n 2._o c._n 33._o and_o public_a act_n that_o if_o he_o come_v to_o succeed_v he_o he_o will_v leave_v nothing_o undo_v pertain_v to_o the_o same_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o many_o prince_n upon_o this_o hope_n promote_v his_o dignity_n with_o the_o cardinal_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v admonish_v to_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n he_o flat_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o so_o that_o by_o the_o king_n command_v certain_a nobleman_n of_o france_n be_v drive_v to_o besiege_v he_o in_o his_o palace_n of_o auignon_n keep_v he_o prisoner_n the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o open_o renounce_v his_o obedience_n while_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n by_o counsel_n take_v among_o they_o labour_v great_o the_o same_o with_o boniface_n no_o more_o resolve_v to_o leave_v the_o popedom_n than_o the_o other_o which_o the_o frenchman_n perceive_v set_v benedict_n at_o liberty_n and_o again_o acknowledge_v he_o innocent_n the_o seven_o on_o the_o other_o part_n 7._o platina_n in_o jnnocent_a 7._o successor_n of_o boniface_n who_o before_o his_o popedom_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n only_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o this_o schism_n so_o pernicious_a to_o all_o christendom_n be_v not_o extinguish_v but_o after_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o that_o dignity_n can_v endure_v to_o hear_v the_o least_o word_n speak_v of_o that_o matter_n yea_o being_n request_v by_o the_o roman_n to_o take_v away_o this_o schism_n and_o to_o quench_v the_o sedition_n especial_o consider_v the_o king_n of_o france_n promise_v to_o put_v to_o his_o help_a hand_n and_o benedict_n at_o his_o instance_n repugned_a not_o the_o same_o he_o send_v the_o roman_n to_o lewis_n his_o nephew_n lodge_v in_o the_o hospital_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n tanquam_fw-la ad_fw-la certum_fw-la carnificem_fw-la say_v platina_n as_o to_o a_o certain_a hangman_n who_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o eleven_o of_o they_o and_o cast_v they_o out_o at_o window_n say_v that_o by_o this_o and_o none_o other_o mean_v the_o schism_n and_o sedition_n be_v to_o be_v take_v away_o thus_o they_o perform_v the_o faith_n they_o promise_v afore_o their_o popedom_n boniface_n as_o we_o have_v see_v have_v spoil_v the_o roman_n of_o their_o liberty_n with_o the_o hope_n of_o profit_n by_o the_o jubilee_n who_o not_o long_o after_o make_v they_o feel_v his_o cruel_a tyranny_n innocent_o be_v come_v to_o the_o popedom_n take_v the_o same_o course_n the_o chief_a and_o most_o honourable_a of_o the_o people_n be_v willing_a to_o return_v to_o their_o ancient_a liberty_n entreat_v innocent_a to_o restore_v unto_o they_o the_o state_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o namely_o to_o put_v into_o their_o hand_n again_o the_o capitol_n ponte_n miluio_n and_o the_o castle_n s_o angelo_n and_o in_o this_o they_o be_v bear_v out_o by_o the_o colonni_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o ursini_n their_o adversary_n dispute_v that_o it_o be_v better_o the_o city_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o thereupon_o arise_v sedition_n combat_n and_o slaughter_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o city_n and_o whatsoever_o violence_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v do_v in_o civil_a dissension_n the_o colonni_n bring_v in_o ladislaus_n king_n of_o hungary_n and_o naples_n into_o the_o city_n the_o pope_n on_o the_o other_o part_n one_o muschard●_n a_o great_a captain_n of_o the_o church_n and_o both_o of_o they_o with_o great_a force_n but_o when_o he_o see_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o weak_a he_o fall_v to_o capitulation_n and_o release_v campania_n to_o ladislaus_n for_o certain_a year_n to_o the_o people_n and_o the_o colonni_n the_o capitol_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o city_n on_o condition_n that_o the_o officer_n shall_v be_v approve_v and_o allow_v by_o he_o and_o upon_o this_o ladislaus_n depart_v the_o city_n and_o scarce_o be_v he_o return_v into_o his_o kingdom_n but_o the_o pope_n continue_v his_o former_a cruelty_n by_o his_o nephew_n so_o that_o the_o fire_n increase_v so_o much_o in_o the_o city_n that_o innocent_a go_v to_o viterbe_n 41._o theodor._n l._n 2._o c._n 34._o 35._o 39_o 41._o whence_o notwithstanding_o a_o while_n after_o he_o be_v call_v back_o by_o the_o people_n who_o be_v weary_a of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a disorder_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o faction_n ever_o and_o anon_o and_o fear_v least_o by_o the_o flight_n of_o innocent_a ladislaus_n will_v take_v occasion_n to_o invade_v the_o city_n and_o have_v there_o strengthen_v his_o affair_n he_o send_v forth_o his_o thunder_a bull_n against_o ladislaus_n but_o as_o concern_v the_o union_n benedict_n be_v solicit_v by_o the_o frenchman_n 38._o l._n 2._o c._n 38._o deal_v with_o innocent_a to_o grant_v a_o safeconduct_n to_o some_o of_o he_o to_o treat_v with_o he_o about_o the_o union_n innocent_o suspect_v that_o he_o go_v about_o some_o guile_n refuse_v to_o do_v it_o whereupon_o benedict_n excuse_v himself_o often_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o want_n in_o he_o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n publish_v cast_v all_o the_o fault_n on_o innocent_a who_o can_v hardly_o save_v himself_o from_o blame_n theodorick_n note_v though_o very_o favourable_a to_o he_o that_o he_o make_v question_n of_o it_o at_o viterbium_n whether_o he_o be_v hold_v to_o make_v the_o say_a union_n call_v then_o into_o doubt_n say_v he_o that_o which_o when_o his_o election_n be_v in_o hand_n in_o the_o conclave_n be_v say_v to_o be_v altogether_o expedient_a whereby_o no_o little_a suspicion_n against_o innocent_n arise_v among_o they_o of_o the_o court_n murmur_v and_o say_v one_o to_o the_o other_o that_o indeed_o he_o will_v not_o make_v the_o union_n and_o he_o can_v hardly_o appease_v they_o but_o that_o when_o he_o
to_o christ_n of_o the_o philosopher_n to_o paul_n they_o double_v upon_o we_o even_o till_o they_o be_v hoarse_a what_o new_a doctrine_n be_v this_o 46.47_o mark_n 1._o v._n 27._o act._n 17._o v._n 19_o math._n 19_o v._n 8._o joh._n 9_o v._n 29._o joh._n 5._o v._n 46.47_o we_o know_v that_o god_n have_v speak_v to_o moses_n but_o this_o man_n we_o know_v not_o whence_o he_o be_v to_o who_o preposterous_o boast_v of_o their_o antiquity_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n himself_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o have_v you_o believe_v moses_n or_o his_o writing_n you_o have_v likewise_o believe_v i_o have_v you_o believe_v the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a scripture_n inspire_v from_o above_o the_o true_a antiquity_n the_o only_a treasury_n of_o the_o charter_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n you_o have_v likewise_o believe_v i_o but_o true_o if_o you_o be_v not_o over_o hard_a of_o belief_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o in_o this_o work_n i_o shall_v satisfy_v you_o touch_v both_o these_o scruple_n let_v they_o not_o make_v you_o believe_v the_o pope_n have_v be_v always_o such_o as_o you_o now_o adore_v behold_v here_o their_o beginning_n their_o progression_n their_o increase_n their_o secret_n subtle_a cruel_a outrageous_a enterprise_n violence_n assault_n a_o mystery_n not_o without_o mystery_n so_o call_v under_o pretence_n of_o the_o ministry_n end_v in_o this_o prodigious_a estate_n that_o we_o see_v in_o this_o two-headed_a monster_n while_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o prelate_n bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n partly_o under_o heathen_a prince_n endure_v cruel_a persecution_n partly_o under_o christian_n though_o great_o enrich_v by_o they_o who_o they_o obey_v willing_o and_o in_o all_o humility_n at_o the_o first_o but_o afterward_o their_o desire_n increase_a with_o their_o mean_n more_o careless_o and_o rather_o for_o a_o fashion_n than_o otherwise_o short_o after_o by_o open_a ambition_n and_o flatter_v some_o in_o their_o sin_n especial_o phocas_n in_o his_o murder_n they_o be_v make_v universal_a bishop_n and_o secular_a prince_n in_o italy_n exclude_v emperor_n and_o not_o content_a to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o obedience_n they_o likewise_o absolve_v both_o the_o noble_n and_o people_n of_o that_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n wherewith_o they_o be_v bind_v at_o the_o last_o threaten_v with_o both_o sword_n they_o mingle_v profane_a thing_n with_o holy_a confound_v and_o devour_v the_o holy_a in_o the_o profane_a they_o set_v king_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n that_o so_o they_o may_v ruin_v at_o one_o the_o other_o and_o they_o by_o their_o ruin_n and_o overthrow_n rise_v to_o the_o high_a step_n of_o their_o power_n they_o crown_v emperor_n make_v and_o unmake_v they_o at_o their_o pleasure_n trample_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n they_o be_v now_o emperor_n and_o pope_n together_o the_o lord_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o world_n now_o high_o than_o the_o angel_n equal_a with_o god_n himself_o nay_o god_n great_a and_o omnipotent_a subrogate_a and_o abrogate_a the_o commandment_n of_o the_o high_a god_n create_v god_n himself_o at_o their_o pleasure_n nay_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v create_v by_o those_o who_o they_o call_v their_o creature_n now_o let_v he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o yet_o doubt_v couple_n &_o compare_v these_o two_o extreme_n together_o a_o minister_n of_o god_n sometime_o a_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n now_o make_v a_o god_n sit_v in_o his_o throne_n use_v god_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v it_o as_o his_o officer_n sometime_o humble_a and_o gentle_a yea_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n yield_v obedience_n to_o all_o prince_n whatsoever_o now_o proud_a cruel_a tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o great_a power_n the_o great_a prince_n sometime_o glorious_a for_o the_o sanctity_n of_o his_o life_n suffer_v joyful_o for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n all_o torment_n and_o torture_n whatsoever_o now_o profane_a puff_v up_o with_o a_o vain_a title_n of_o holiness_n imbrue_v &_o make_v drunken_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n what_o reason_n what_o proportion_n can_v there_o be_v i_o pray_v you_o betwixt_o two_o extreme_n so_o different_a so_o repugnant_a and_o what_o shall_v stay_v we_o but_o that_o with_o astonishment_n we_o may_v cry_v out_o a_o mystery_n great_a babylon_n in_o so_o strange_a a_o novelty_n so_o diverse_a change_n be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o popedom_n where_o satan_n reign_v so_o visible_o under_o the_o only_a name_n to_o say_v no_o more_o the_o mask_n of_o s._n peter_n let_v they_o not_o abuse_v you_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n the_o catholic_a they_o call_v it_o thereby_o infer_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o nor_o ever_o be_v the_o universal_a the_o catholic_a church_n a_o part_n thereof_o it_o be_v so_o long_o as_o it_o continue_v pure_a and_o unpolluted_a but_o yet_o but_o a_o part_n with_o other_o not_o above_o other_o and_o therefore_o by_o her_o fall_n her_o ruin_n the_o flock_n of_o christ_n can_v perish_v though_o that_o perish_v utter_o by_o her_o defection_n the_o flock_n of_o christ_n can_v fail_v though_o that_o fail_v utter_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o pure_a and_o chaste_a and_o no_o small_a part_n of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n so_o long_o as_o she_o hearken_v to_o his_o voice_n and_o stop_v her_o ear_n against_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n have_v always_o before_o her_o eye_n her_o vow_n and_o contract_n of_o marriage_n but_o the_o adulterer_n with_o false_a key_n creep_v into_o her_o bedchamber_n nay_o perhaps_o by_o herself_o be_v let_v in_o by_o the_o postern_n he_o have_v defile_v her_o bed_n and_o with_o that_o contagious_a copulation_n her_o beautiful_a countenance_n be_v become_v pale_a and_o ghastly_a her_o natural_a colour_n defile_v with_o painting_n her_o true_a doctrine_n infect_v with_o forge_a tale_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o a_o manner_n she_o be_v become_v nothing_o else_o but_o falsehood_n and_o lie_n other_o church_n have_v do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o she_o as_o that_o of_o africa_n france_n germany_n greece_n and_o other_o the_o east_n church_n neither_o be_v there_o want_v in_o herself_o faithful_a dog_n who_o with_o the_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n cease_v not_o so_o long_o as_o they_o may_v to_o bark_v at_o he_o when_o he_o begin_v first_o to_o increase_v to_o dig_v and_o to_o break_v through_o the_o wall_n oppose_v and_o interpose_v their_o defence_n make_v head_n against_o he_o even_o in_o the_o breach_n until_o at_o the_o last_o by_o the_o collusion_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n have_v obtain_v the_o end_n of_o his_o designment_n and_o overrun_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n he_o make_v the_o house_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o proverb_n the_o stable_n of_o auria_n the_o cave_n of_o cacus_n miserable_o oppress_v all_o the_o godly_a yea_o piety_n itself_o from_o thence_o forward_a the_o suppress_v groan_n of_o the_o godly_a brake_n forth_o and_o the_o mournful_a plaint_n of_o that_o woman_n that_o fly_v from_o the_o dragon_n of_o our_o dove_n the_o pure_a church_n be_v every_o where_o hear_v her_o footstep_n sometime_o though_o fly_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o persecuter_n you_o may_v discern_v but_o yet_o by_o the_o persecute_v rabble_n unmanured_a deface_v half_o cover_v her_o voice_n among_o the_o salmonean_a thunder_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v hardly_o hear_v be_v every_o where_o interrupt_v by_o the_o noise_n of_o the_o sparkle_a flame_n about_o she_o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o phalaris_n bull_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o monk_n and_o the_o mouth_n of_o her_o adversary_n lest_o we_o shall_v lament_v the_o torture_n of_o the_o godly_a turn_v into_o the_o bellow_n of_o a_o ox_n do_v thou_o ask_v therefore_o where_o our_o church_n be_v so_o many_o age_n past_a where_o it_o feed_v her_o flock_n where_o it_o lay_v at_o noon_n 7._o cant._n 1._o v._n 7._o hear_v i_o pray_v thou_o what_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n say_v the_o woman_n that_o be_v the_o church_n persecute_v by_o the_o dragon_n 16._o apoc._n 12._o v._o 6._o &_o 16._o do_v fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o she_o have_v a_o place_n prepare_v of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v feed_v she_o there_o one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o day_n that_o be_v prophetical_a day_n a_o time_n certain_a and_o that_o not_o short_a she_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o popedom_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o pride_n and_o excess_n it_o be_v likewise_o say_v that_o the_o dragon_n which_o deceive_v the_o whole_a world_n have_v great_a wrath_n persecute_v the_o woman_n and_o cast_v out_o
august_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la li._n 20._o c._n 19_o baron_fw-fr annal._n to_o 1._o a_o 45._o art_n 17._o &_o 18._o sit_v upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o apostle_n will_v never_o call_v that_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v god_n temple_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o some_o imagine_v that_o this_o antichrist_n note_n well_o these_o word_n be_v a_o prince_n with_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o those_o which_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o think_v it_o more_o proper_a to_o express_v it_o in_o latin_a as_o it_o be_v in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o templum_fw-la non_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la meaning_n that_o he_o shall_v sit_v as_o if_o himself_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o his_o very_a church_n itself_o 1._o ireneus_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 25_o tertullian_n caversus_fw-la judaeos_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la marcio_n lib._n 3._o hieron_n in_o ca●a_n &_o in_o isai_n c._n 47._o euseb_n li._n 2._o c._n 25._o ambros_n in_o 2._o thess_n ●_o c._n 2._o august_n lib._n ●8_o de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la c._n ●_o and●_n casa●_n in_o apocal._n c._n ●_o in_o beda_n oecumen_fw-la lyran._n thomas_n caiet_fw-mi in_o 1._o pet._n c._n ult._n bellarmin_n de_fw-fr romano_n pontis_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 2._o tertul._n adversus_fw-la judaeos_fw-la &_o lib._n 3._o contra_fw-la marci●_n hieron_n ad_fw-la algasiam_fw-la quest_n 17._o art_n &_o andre_n in_o apocal._n 〈…〉_o glossa_fw-la ordin_n ibid._n hieron_n ad_fw-la marcellam_fw-la viduam_fw-la idem_fw-la contra_fw-la jovinian_a lib._n 1._o which_o jump_v with_o that_o maxim_n of_o the_o pope_n adherent_n that_o in_o his_o person_n the_o whole_a church_n reside_v and_o consist_v wherefore_o it_o be_v now_o manifest_a that_o antichrist_n shall_v have_v his_o seat_n in_o the_o church_n christian_n now_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n or_o no._n ireneus_fw-la sure_o search_v after_o the_o number_n of_o 666_o which_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o in_o so_o obscure_a a_o point_n he_o pronounce_v nothing_o definitive_o yet_o give_v he_o we_o plain_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o thou_o g●●_n it_o to_o be_v there_o for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a for_o such_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o now_o sway_v in_o the_o world_n they_o call_v themselves_o latin_v so_o likewise_o do_v tert●llian_n jerome_n ambrose_n augustine_n andrew_n b._n of_o caesarea_n beda_n oecumenius_n lyranue_n aquinas_n caietan_n and_o other_o when_o by_o babylon_n they_o understand_v rome_n as_o well_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n and_o last_o chapter_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o bellarmin_n himself_o be_v clear_a in_o this_o opinion_n and_o baronius_n affirm_v that_o by_o babylon_n in_o the_o place_n before_o rehearse_v can_v be_v mean_v but_o rome_n much_o more_o when_o by_o the_o whore_n clothe_v in_o scarlet_a which_o make_v drink_v all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o understand_v rome_n as_o tertullian_n jerome_n aretas_n andrew_n of_o caesare●_n the_o ordinary_a gloss_n bellarmin_n also_o and_o baronius_n and_o other_o do_v nay_o we_o say_v f●●●_n she_o that_o the_o ancient_n understand_v it_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o corruption_n they_o see_v even_o in_o those_o day_n to_o increase_v so_o fast_o for_o to_o she_o apply_v saint_n jerome_n those_o word_n of_o the_o apocalyps_n go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n nor_o of_o her_o plague_n fly_v out_o of_o babylon_n and_o let_v every_o one_o save_o his_o own_o soul_n for_o she_o be_v fall_v she_o be_v fall_v and_o be_v make_v a_o receptacle_n for_o devil_n a_o habitation_n of_o all_o unclean_a spirit_n for_o sure_o say_v he_o there_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n there_o be_v the_o trophy_n and_o monument_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n and_o there_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o christ_n but_o withal_o say_v he_o there_o be_v ambition_n and_o oppression_n luxury_n of_o the_o belly_n and_o of_o the_o throat_n which_o go_v to_o overthrow_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o therefore_o he_o summon_v all_o well_o dispose_v people_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o she_o though_o build_v upon_o christ_n the_o true_a rock_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o though_o her_o prophet_n which_o deceive_v she_o cry_v out_o peace_n peace_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o lull_v they_o asleep_a in_o their_o own_o security_n and_o he_o seem_v far_a to_o strike_v at_o her_o very_a hierarchy_n when_o as_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o book_n of_o didymus_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sancto_fw-la idem_fw-la in_o prefati_fw-la in_o lib._n do_v de_fw-fr spir._n sancto_fw-la we_o find_v these_o word_n when_o i_o live_v say_v he_o in_o babylon_n a_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o purple_a whore_n after_o the_o law_n of_o the_o quirite_n or_o citizen_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v have_v write_v something_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v dedicate_v the_o treatise_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n and_o behold_v that_o seethe_a pot_n which_o be_v see_v in_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n look_v out_o of_o the_o north_n begin_v already_o to_o boil_v and_o the_o senate_n of_o pharise_n cry_v out_o at_o i_o all_o at_o once_o neither_o be_v there_o so_o simple_a and_o mean_a a_o scribe_n of_o all_o that_o ignorant_a rabble_n which_o conspire_v not_o against_o i_o wherefore_o i_o be_o now_o as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o captivity_n return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o after_o that_o cottage_n of_o romulus_n and_o those_o lupercall_a sport_n come_v to_o visit_v again_o the_o hosterie_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o saviour_n etc._n etc._n have_v this_o holy_a father_n live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n and_o see_v what_o pass_v in_o these_o late_a age_n what_o will_v he_o have_v say_v and_o true_o to_o understand_v those_o passage_n of_o the_o apocalips_n of_o rome_n painim_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o and_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o make_v it_o of_o a_o mysterious_a pprophecy_n as_o all_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a story_n cold_a and_o frivolous_a or_o be_v it_o fit_v that_o the_o prophet_n with_o so_o majestical_a a_o preface_n speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n shall_v advertise_v we_o that_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v persecute_v the_o christian_n which_o have_v already_o see_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o brother_n shed_v and_o so_o many_o thousand_o christian_n slaughter_v in_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o again_o where_o will_v a_o man_n find_v we_o in_o rome_n painim_n those_o ten_o king_n make_v drink_v with_o his_o cup_n see_v there_o be_v in_o rome_n no_o king_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o the_o jesuite_n themselves_o have_v be_v force_v to_o yield_v this_o point_n 3._o ribera_n apocalip_n c._n 14._o num_fw-la 42._o &_o 57_o viega_n in_o 17._o apoc_fw-la come_v 1._o sect_n 3._o this_o must_v say_v ribera_n be_v understand_v of_o rome_n not_o only_o such_o as_o she_o be_v under_o the_o emperor_n but_o also_o such_o as_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o late_a day_n and_o viega_n say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o babylon_n must_v be_v refer_v to_o she_o and_o not_o only_o to_o that_o rome_n which_o serve_v idol_n before_o it_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o to_o that_o rome_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n by_o which_o word_n what_o can_v be_v mean_v but_o the_o papacy_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1._o ca._n proposait_fw-fr extra_fw-la de_fw-la prabend_n &_o gloss_n ib._n lib._n ●_o cerem_fw-la pontis_fw-la c._n 1._o but_o some_o man_n will_v say_v when_o be_v it_o see_v that_o a_o pope_n call_v himself_o god_n and_o i_o answer_v that_o neither_o be_v the_o pope_n themselves_o over_o spare_v in_o call_v themselves_o god_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o canonist_n be_v over_o prodigal_a of_o such_o title_n and_o of_o far_o great_a also_o if_o great_a may_v be_v while_o they_o make_v they_o to_o participate_v of_o the_o deity_n and_o with_o power_n to_o command_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o hell_n as_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o discourse_n will_v but_o too_o apparent_o declare_v and_o it_o be_v but_o needless_a to_o repeat_v here_o what_o i_o have_v long_o since_o sufficient_o prove_v in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 9_o but_o this_o be_v the_o point_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o god_n so_o often_o forewarn_v we_o of_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o church_n of_o god_n with_o false_a ●eyes_n in_o all_o deceitfulness_n of_o iniquity_n say_v saint_n
the_o church_n 55._o editio_fw-la parisien_n epist_n 18._o pa._n mell_v 55._o but_o cyprian_n complain_v thereof_o unto_o cornelius_n as_o of_o a_o wrong_n and_o in_o bar_n of_o such_o proceed_n plead_v the_o law_n and_o constitution_n of_o holy_a church_n these_o fellow_n say_v he_o after_o all_o this_o presume_v to_o pass_v the_o sea_n etc._n etc._n for_o see_v say_v he_o that_o by_o we_o all_o it_o have_v be_v already_o ordain_v according_a to_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n that_o every_o one_o cause_n shall_v be_v hear_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o fact_n commit_v and_o that_o to_o every_o pastor_n shall_v be_v allot_v his_o proper_a portion_n of_o the_o flock_n which_o he_o be_v to_o oversee_v and_o for_o which_o he_o shall_v stand_v answerable_a unto_o god_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o those_o over_o who_o we_o be_v set_v shall_v run_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o make_v the_o bishop_n who_o be_v at_o unity_n among_o themselves_o to_o square_v and_o fall_v foul_a one_o of_o another_o for_o example_n cornelius_n and_o cyprian_n but_o that_o every_o one_o answer_n for_o himself_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o defendant_n may_v have_v both_o accuser_n and_o witness_n face_n to_o face_n unless_o perhaps_o these_o few_o desperate_a companion_n think_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n who_o have_v condemn_v they_o to_o be_v less_o meaning_n less_o than_o that_o of_o cornelius_n to_o who_o they_o flee_v by_o all_o which_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o cyprian_n think_v to_o acknowledge_v any_o right_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 33._o bellarm._n de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 33._o wherefore_o when_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o the_o constitution_n allege_v by_o s._n cyprian_n that_o every_o cause_n shall_v be_v hear_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o fact_n commit_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o instance_n the_o word_n themselves_o and_o those_o which_o follow_v be_v too_o too_o clear_a against_o he_o the_o cause_n say_v cyprian_n have_v be_v hear_v sentence_n be_v pass_v it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o a_o censure_n of_o priest_n or_o bishop_n shall_v be_v retract_v as_o rash_a and_o unaduised_a and_o as_o frivolous_a be_v that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n less_o be_v not_o speak_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o the_o cause_n for_o those_o word_n unless_o they_o think_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o be_v less_o must_v necessary_o be_v understand_v in_o comparison_n of_o they_o with_o other_o bishop_n of_o those_o against_o who_o they_o complain_v with_o he_o to_o who_o they_o sail_v that_o be_v unto_o cornelius_n and_o all_o this_o suit_v with_o the_o vein_n of_o cyprian_a as_o also_o do_v that_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o apostle_n say_v he_o be_v the_o same_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v of_o like_a honour_n of_o equal_a authority_n and_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n proceed_v from_o unity_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o where_o yet_o to_o bolster_v out_o this_o pretend_a primacy_n one_o or_o other_o have_v corrupt_v the_o text_n in_o sundry_a place_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o manuscript_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o paris_n edition_n by_o the_o learned_a turnebus_n for_o between_o these_o word_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la and_o et_fw-la quamuis_fw-la either_o pamelius_n or_o some_o other_o before_o he_o have_v insert_v these_o super_fw-la unum_fw-la illum_fw-la aedificat_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la &_o illi_fw-la pascendas_fw-la mandat_fw-la oves_fw-la svas_fw-la that_o be_v he_o have_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o he_o alone_o i._n s._n peter_n and_o he_o have_v he_o command_v to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o whereas_o turnebus_n read_v tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la unitatem_fw-la manifestaret_fw-la unitatis_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la originem_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la incipientem_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la disposuit_fw-la i._n yet_o that_o he_o meaning_n christ_n may_v declare_v this_o unity_n he_o have_v declare_v by_o his_o authority_n that_o this_o unity_n shall_v take_v her_o beginning_n from_o one_o alone_a pamelius_n with_o like_a honesty_n as_o before_o between_o these_o word_n manifestaret_fw-la and_o unius_fw-la have_v thrust_v in_o these_o unam_fw-la cathedram_fw-la constituit_fw-la i._o he_o have_v establish_v one_o chair_n likewise_o after_o those_o word_n before_o mention_v the_o apostle_n be_v all_o the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v etc._n etc._n after_o the_o word_n proficiscite_fw-la he_o add_v primatus_fw-la petro_n datur_fw-la the_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n and_o again_o unto_o these_o word_n ut_fw-la una_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la monstretur_fw-la he_o add_v &_o cathedra_fw-la una_fw-la i_o and_o one_o chair_n and_o to_o conclude_v where_o s._n cyprian_n say_v qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la renititur_fw-la &_o resistit_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la confidit_fw-la i._o he_o which_o resist_v the_o church_n can_v he_o hope_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n pamelius_n between_o these_o word_n resistit_fw-la and_o in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la foi_v in_o these_o qui_fw-la cathedram_fw-la petri_n super_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la fundata_fw-la est_fw-la deserit_fw-la i._o he_o which_o forsake_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o the_o like_a do_v he_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o this_o treatise_n which_o addition_n how_o incompatible_a be_v they_o with_o the_o sense_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n have_v give_v after_o his_o resurrection_n equal_a power_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o again_o they_o be_v all_o the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v as_o also_o with_o that_o nullity_n pronounce_v elsewhere_o against_o appeal_n make_v over_o the_o sea_n al●ator_n cyprian_a in_o council_n carthagin_n sive_z de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr episcop_n 73._o editio_fw-la parisiens_n cyprian_a de_fw-fr al●ator_n and_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o author_n none_o of_o we_o say_v he_o have_v make_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n through_o fear_n and_o tyranny_n to_o force_v his_o colleague_n to_o his_o obedience_n the_o heavenly_a goodness_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o the_o order_n of_o the_o apostleship_n and_o have_v by_o his_o heavenly_a favour_n dignify_v the_o vicar_n seat_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n say_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o they_o to_o all_o bishop_n which_o shall_v succeed_v they_o in_o their_o vicariall_a ordination_n he_o which_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o parisien_n idem_fw-la ad_fw-la puppien_n epist_n 66._o editio_fw-la parisien_n so_o that_o say_v he_o one_o of_o we_o may_v not_o judge_v another_o but_o we_o attend_v he_o except_v none_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n who_o alone_o have_v power_n vnus_fw-la &_o solus_fw-la to_o ordain_v we_o to_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o judge_v our_o do_n thus_o far_a cyprian_a immediate_o upon_o who_o death_n the_o church_n of_o africa_n to_o cut_v off_o all_o claim_n of_o this_o pretend_a jurisdiction_n decree_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v prince_n of_o priest_n or_o chief_a bishop_n 1._o idem_fw-la in_o council_n carthag_n sive_z de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr episcop_n epist_n 73._o council_n afric_n art_n 6._o capitu._n carol._n magn._n li_n 7._o c._n 17._o bochell_n decret_n ecclesiae_fw-la gallic_n li._n 5._o tit_n 5._o cap._n 1._o or_o by_o any_o other_o like_o name_n which_o decree_n our_o french_a church_n heretofore_o understand_v express_o of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o now_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_n which_o edition_n that_o of_o pamelius_n or_o this_o of_o turnebus_n sort_v and_o suit_v better_a with_o these_o say_n of_o cyprian_a and_o consequent_o whether_o these_o be_v not_o harpy_n claw_n which_o thus_o defile_v the_o pure_a ford_n of_o the_o father_n writing_n to_o our_o hand_n and_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o this_o epistle_n who_o can_v warrant_v we_o that_o they_o have_v not_o do_v in_o the_o other_o writing_n of_o the_o same_o father_n and_o of_o all_o other_o father_n but_o here_o may_v we_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o audaciousness_n of_o baronius_n passim_fw-la baron_fw-fr to_o 1._o a_o 33._o art_n 21_o &_o a_o 34._o art_n 203._o &_o passim_fw-la who_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v clean_o contrary_a for_o first_o he_o say_v that_o s._n cyprian_n acknowledge_v s._n peter_n chair_n as_o supreme_a judge_n over_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n ground_v himself_o upon_o the_o epistle_n before_o rehearse_v and_o so_o notorious_o corrupt_v which_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a so_o often_o to_o repeat_v as_o if_o it_o be_v as_o true_a as_o gospel_n and_o who_o can_v make_v his_o own_o cause_n seem_v good_a if_o he_o may_v be_v
council_n of_o nice_a call_v thither_o the_o bishop_n out_o of_o all_o part_n and_o he_o call_v this_o dispatch_n of_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o precept_n or_o command_v and_o in_o the_o title_n it_o be_v say_v 16._o theodoret._n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 16._o that_o he_o enjoin_v and_o theodoret_n the_o emperor_n say_v he_o not_o able_a to_o compose_v matter_n in_o alexandria_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d assemble_v that_o great_a council_n and_o sozomen_n use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n he_o call_v they_o together_o also_o the_o synod_n itself_o write_v to_o the_o church_n 1._o acta_fw-la council_n nicaen_fw-la vol._n 1._o we_o say_v they_o here_o assemble_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o favour_n of_o constantine_n our_o prince_n belove_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o likewise_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n they_o use_v these_o word_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o emperor_n 1._o socrat._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o gelaz_n cyzicen_n l._n 1._o likewise_o socrates_n and_o cyzicenus_n use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n he_o gather_v or_o assemble_v they_o together_o as_o eusebius_n have_v do_v before_o they_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o father_n or_o historian_n of_o the_o church_n which_o speak_v in_o other_o manner_n 1._o baron_fw-fr a_o 324._o art_n 131._o to_o 3._o council_n rom._n 2._o c._n 1._o and_o all_o this_o do_v by_o constantine_n after_o the_o time_n that_o baronius_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o good_a and_o a_o perfect_a christian_a and_o withal_o most_o forward_o to_o advance_v the_o church_n to_o wit_n after_o his_o baptism_n and_o a_o whole_a year_n after_o that_o suppose_a donation_n of_o he_o what_o now_o will_v he_o say_v to_o this_o see_v the_o whole_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v this_o for_o a_o most_o holy_a and_o lawful_a council_n back_o again_o to_o his_o old_a ward_n and_o to_o his_o conjecture_n the_o council_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o be_v hold_v one_o year_n before_o under_o sylvester_n ad_fw-la traiani_n thermas_fw-la and_o why_o not_o at_o lateran_n if_o that_o have_v be_v his_o own_o palace_n as_o he_o say_v before_o constantine_n and_o helena_n his_o mother_n be_v there_o present_a but_o will_n this_o cardinal_n stand_v to_o this_o council_n where_o the_o priest_n of_o rome_n now_o call_v cardinal_n stand_v behind_o the_o place_n where_o the_o bishop_n sit_v 324._o baron_fw-fr a_o 324._o but_o to_o the_o matter_n who_o dare_v to_o doubt_v say_v he_o but_o that_o sylvester_n and_o constantine_n at_o this_o council_n conclude_v to_o call_v that_o other_o afterward_o at_o nice_a and_o we_o ask_v again_o who_o dare_v to_o affirm_v it_o see_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n mention_v in_o the_o council_n nor_o the_o arrian_n there_o so_o much_o as_o name_v a_o silly_a guess_n as_o ever_o be_v but_o if_o baronius_n will_v needs_o stand_v to_o ghess_n why_o may_v not_o we_o do_v the_o like_a and_o say_v who_o doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v there_o accord_v that_o constantine_n himself_o shall_v call_v it_o see_v that_o indeed_o he_o do_v call_v it_o as_o all_o history_n record_v and_o that_o without_o contradiction_n of_o any_o for_o aught_o that_o yet_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a yet_o be_v not_o baronius_n ashamed_a to_o build_v hereupon_o as_o upon_o a_o undoubted_a verity_n sequent_a baron_fw-fr a_o 325._o art_n 13._o &_o sequent_a and_o if_o all_o fail_v at_o least_o say_v he_o this_o be_v sure_a that_o hosius_n preside_v there_o as_o legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v if_o he_o prove_v his_o embassage_n here_o any_o better_a than_o he_o do_v that_o other_o at_o alexandria_n before_o mention_v 11._o euseb_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constant_n lib._n 3._o edi●_n lat._n c._n 7._o ib._n c._n 11._o eusebius_n in_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n he_o which_o preside_v over_o the_o imperial_a city_n mean_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o in_o this_o assembly_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o age_n but_o his_o priest_n there_o present_v supply_v his_o room_n now_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n be_v name_v for_o such_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o hosius_n who_o shall_v least_o of_o all_o have_v be_v forget_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v to_o any_o such_o effect_n why_o then_o say_v he_o 1._o athanas_n apoleget_v 1._o do_v hosius_n first_o subscribe_v before_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v because_o he_o be_v principal_o employ_v by_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o compose_n of_o this_o difference_n in_o regard_n whereof_o he_o do_v the_o like_a also_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o see_v that_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n we_o have_v subscribe_v for_o the_o reverend_a sylvester_n our_o pope_n and_o bishop_n nicaen_fw-la acta_fw-la council_n nicaen_fw-la why_o do_v not_o hosius_n the_o like_a if_o he_o be_v also_o his_o legate_n why_o subscribe_v he_o in_o his_o own_o name_n i_o hosius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n of_o the_o province_n of_o spain_n do_v so_o believe_v for_o so_o we_o find_v it_o even_o in_o the_o old_a roman_a code_n itself_o baronius_n repli_v out_o of_o the_o title_n of_o a_o certain_a epistle_n write_v as_o he_o say_v from_o the_o council_n unto_o sylvester_n by_o his_o legate_n 2._o baron_fw-fr a_o 325._o art_n 2._o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o presuppose_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n the_o title_n therefore_o be_v this_o to_o sylvester_n the_o most_o bless_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n hosius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n a_o province_n in_o spain_n and_o macarius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n priest_n of_o rome_n appoint_v or_o ordain_v by_o your_o direction_n not_o to_o say_v that_o this_o epistle_n with_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v both_o note_v in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o this_o council_n to_o be_v of_o little_a credit_n i_o ask_v only_o whether_o he_o will_v have_v macarius_n also_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o whether_o that_o word_n direction_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n as_o eusebius_n will_v have_v it_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v 54._o baron_fw-fr a_o 325._o art_n 54._o that_o baronius_n when_o he_o allege_v this_o title_n leave_v out_o macarius_n to_o blind_v his_o reader_n and_o to_o save_v himself_o from_o this_o absurdity_n last_o of_o all_o if_o hosius_n have_v be_v his_o legate_n shall_v not_o he_o also_o have_v open_v the_o council_n which_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n 7._o theodor._n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o say_v eusebius_n which_o sit_v uppermost_a upon_o the_o right_a hand_n stand_v up_o make_v a_o short_a speech_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o rehearse_v a_o certain_a hymn_n to_o give_v thanks_n to_o almighty_a god_n and_o this_o be_v eustathius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n stand_v now_o as_o a_o party_n against_o arrius_n five_o baronius_n grow_v very_o choleric_a to_o see_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n order_v by_o the_o sixth_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n as_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v he_o say_v that_o these_o canon_n be_v mangle_v and_o must_v be_v correct_v by_o those_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o yet_o may_v baronius_n put_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v gain_v thereby_o in_o his_o eye_n and_o do_v himself_o no_o harm_n as_o we_o have_v already_o show_v against_o bellarmine_n ruffinus_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n stick_v most_o in_o his_o stomach_n for_o bound_v the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n with_o these_o word_n 6._o ruffin_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o suburbicariarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la curam_fw-la gerat_fw-la i._n that_o he_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n near_o about_o the_o city_n and_o baronius_n tell_v we_o that_o regiones_fw-la suburbicariae_fw-la and_o vrbicariae_n 54._o baron_fw-fr a_o 324._o art_n 54._o in_o the_o imperial_a law_n of_o those_o time_n be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o regiones_fw-la vrbicariae_fw-la comprise_v beside_o italy_n the_o isle_n of_o sicily_n africa_n egypt_n and_o many_o other_o country_n forget_v in_o his_o choler_n that_o the_o very_a canon_n itself_o now_o in_o question_n assign_v egypt_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o consequent_o not_o to_o he_o of_o rome_n author_n for_o this_o assertion_n he_o have_v none_o nor_o reason_n more_o than_o this_o roma_fw-la lib._n 14._o cod._n theodos_n l._n 6._o tit_n de_fw-fr canon_n frumentar_n vrbis_fw-la roma_fw-la that_o these_o province_n be_v call_v vrbicariae_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o and_o the_o reason_n may_v be_v because_o they_o yield_v a_o yearly_a revenue_n of_o corn_n urbi_fw-la to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o
which_o the_o author_n himself_o attribute_v unto_o all_o the_o like_a care_n say_v he_o do_v alexander_n the_o bishop_n take_v in_o antioch_n be_v the_o first_o which_o cause_v his_o name_n to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v true_a but_o baronius_n add_v that_o he_o do_v it_o at_o the_o instance_n and_o request_n of_o innocentius_n have_v no_o other_o argument_n for_o this_o assertion_n but_o this_o that_o innocent_n write_v a_o letter_n to_o he_o for_o as_o touch_v any_o such_o matter_n theodoret_n speak_v not_o a_o word_n 8._o progression_n of_o the_o attempt_n of_o innocentius_n and_o syricius_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n and_o africa_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n find_v no_o passage_n open_a to_o their_o intend_a supremacy_n through_o the_o constancy_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n bend_v their_o course_n back_o upon_o the_o west_n especial_o upon_o africa_n where_o they_o think_v to_o meet_v with_o less_o opposition_n council_n to._n 1._o council_n damasus_n have_v already_o break_v the_o ice_n unto_o they_o as_o appeareth_z by_o that_o epistle_n of_o his_o write_v to_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o mauritania_n wherein_o he_o qualifi_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o firmament_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o top_n of_o all_o other_o church_n embolden_v no_o doubt_n thereunto_o by_o letter_n send_v before_o that_o time_n unto_o he_o from_o the_o say_v stephanus_n who_o complain_v that_o certain_a bishop_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o africa_n add_v that_o this_o be_v so_o do_v notwithstanding_o they_o all_o know_v well_o enough_o ibid._n ibid._n that_o censure_n of_o bishop_n and_o all_o other_o church_n cause_v of_o moment_n aught_o to_o be_v reserve_v to_o the_o audience_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o he_o there_o term_v the_o father_n of_o father_n be_v of_o the_o very_a brood_n and_o offspring_n of_o those_o rebel_n bishop_n of_o africa_n of_o who_o saint_n cyprian_a complain_v in_o his_o day_n who_o be_v reprove_v and_o censure_v for_o their_o fault_n will_v present_o cross_v the_o sea_n and_o run_v to_o rome_n for_o sanctuary_n all_o which_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o this_o condition_n if_o those_o decretal_a epistle_n insert_v among_o the_o counsel_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o credit_n which_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v the_o more_o learned_a sort_n reject_v as_o counterfeit_v until_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n syricius_n who_o now_o enter_v upon_o the_o stage_n and_o indeed_o the_o old_a roman_a code_n leave_v they_o all_o out_o until_o the_o time_n of_o this_o syricius_n this_o syricius_n about_o the_o year_n 386_o 386._o an._n 386._o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o himerius_n bishop_n of_o arragon_n be_v very_o quick_a and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o decree_n and_o statute_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o reque_v he_o to_o make_v know_v such_o ordinance_n and_o decree_n as_o he_o shall_v send_v unto_o he_o not_o only_o to_o those_o of_o his_o own_o diocese_n but_o also_o to_o those_o of_o carthagena_n andalusia_n portugal_n galeace_v and_o other_o that_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o all_o the_o province_n of_o spain_n which_o can_v not_o say_v he_o but_o he_o glorious_a unto_o he_o which_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o so_o long_a continuance_n svi_fw-la pro_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la svi_fw-la purpose_v to_o use_v the_o ambitious_a humour_n of_o this_o prelate_n only_o to_o make_v himself_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o see_v great_a in_o spain_n and_o in_o his_o four_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n he_o go_v a_o step_n far_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o without_o the_o privity_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o primate_n none_o may_v presume_v to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n and_o this_o word_n primate_n some_o interpret_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o claim_n which_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o primacy_n not_o long_o before_o by_o damasus_n and_o these_o late_a presumption_n of_o syricius_n himself_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v improbable_a that_o he_o will_v impart_v this_o title_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o any_o save_v only_o to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n opposition_n 12._o council_n carth._n 2._o ca._n 12._o the_o africane_n therefore_o assemble_v upon_o this_o occasion_n a_o second_o council_n at_o carthage_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o syricius_n where_o they_o decree_v in_o this_o manner_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o all_o that_o without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o primate_n of_o every_o province_n no_o man_n hereafter_o presume_v in_o what_o place_n soever_o to_o ordain_v any_o bishop_n without_o any_o reference_n at_o all_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o say_v they_o if_o necessity_n so_o require_v any_o three_o bishop_n by_o order_n from_o the_o primate_n may_v consecrate_v a_o bishop_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o in_o this_o very_a canon_n they_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a the_o first_o chair_n or_o chief_a see_v and_o that_o gratian_n insert_v this_o canon_n in_o his_o book_n of_o decree_n 5._o distinct_a 64._o c._n extra_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la 5._o follow_v the_o intent_n of_o this_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o not_o of_o syricius_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a bishop_n not_o to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v though_o he_o false_o report_v it_o under_o the_o name_n of_o innocent_a and_o in_o the_o year_n 397_o 397._o an._n 397._o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n go_v a_o little_a far_o syricius_n at_o that_o time_n also_o sit_v pope_n and_o decree_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n or_o chief_a of_o priest_n 26._o council_n carthag_n 3._o ca._n 26._o or_o high_a priest_n or_o by_o any_o other_o such_o name_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n itself_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n which_o last_o word_n be_v also_o in_o gratian_n though_o now_o 3._o distinct_a 99_o ca._n primae_fw-la sedis_fw-la 3._o through_o the_o good_a order_n which_o of_o late_a time_n have_v be_v take_v in_o these_o matter_n they_o be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v forget_v for_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v meet_v and_o march_v together_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o of_o discipline_n and_o that_o syricius_n shall_v be_v the_o man_n who_o shall_v first_o establish_v the_o forbiddance_n of_o priest_n marriage_n though_o by_o general_a consent_n reject_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o not_o receive_v for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o in_o the_o west_n do_v what_o his_o successor_n can_v do_v bring_v in_o also_o the_o the_o commemoration_n of_o saint_n into_o the_o liturgy_n and_o daily_a service_n of_o the_o church_n in_o imitation_n perhaps_o of_o that_o carman_n saliare_a use_v heretofore_o among_o the_o roman_n wherein_o the_o name_n of_o all_o their_o god_n wherewith_o much_o solemnity_n rehearse_v for_o that_o be_v the_o disease_n of_o that_o age_n to_o fashion_v themselves_o in_o all_o point_n after_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o heathen_a 9_o progression_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n innocent_n concern_v appeal_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 401_o come_v innocent_a who_o will_v not_o be_v so_o put_v back_o he_o 3._o an._n 401._o innocent_n epist_n 2._o ad_fw-la victric_n rothomagens_n c._n 3._o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o victricius_n bishop_n of_o rouen_n publish_v this_o general_a decree_n that_o the_o great_a cause_n after_o that_o they_o have_v be_v censure_v by_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o synod_n say_v he_o have_v ordain_v and_o the_o laudable_a use_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n require_v yet_o have_v we_o hitherto_o see_v the_o contrary_a both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o also_o in_o the_o other_o but_o he_o go_v on_o seek_v to_o practice_v what_o he_o project_v mace_v epist_n 7._o ad_fw-la episc_n mace_v upon_o the_o macedonian_n and_o persuade_v they_o that_o he_o do_v the_o like_a in_o all_o other_o place_n let_v we_o therefore_o now_o see_v whether_o he_o find_v any_o better_a success_n in_o this_o his_o attempt_n than_o his_o predecessor_n have_v before_o he_o opposition_n the_o question_n than_o be_v as_o you_o see_v about_o great_a cause_n 402._o an._n 402._o in_o the_o year_n 402_o be_v hold_v the_o milevitan_a council_n and_o after_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 413_o another_o at_o carthage_n 413._o an._n 413._o where_o no_o petty_a cause_n be_v in_o handle_v but_o the_o main_a doctrine_n
of_o the_o church_n the_o schism_n of_o donatus_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n where_o both_o be_v condemn_v and_o pelagius_n concern_v who_o doctrine_n pope_n innocent_n think_v fit_a to_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n be_v excommunicate_v and_o all_o this_o do_v without_o consult_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_a sentence_n be_v already_o pass_v he_o be_v entreat_v to_o join_v his_o authority_n and_o voice_n with_o they_o for_o so_o go_v the_o word_n of_o those_o father_n in_o a_o letter_n which_o they_o send_v unto_o he_o report_v by_o s._n augustine_n we_o have_v say_v they_o 90_o council_n carth._n ad_fw-la innocent_n to_o 1._o pa._n 469._o august_n epist_n 90_o by_o common_a consent_n pronounce_v pelagius_n and_o caelestius_n to_o be_v excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n for_o the_o amendment_n if_o not_o of_o they_o yet_o of_o those_o who_o they_o have_v seduce_v which_o do_v we_o have_v think_v good_a dear_a brother_n to_o signify_v so_o much_o unto_o thou_o to_o the_o end_n that_o unto_o this_o ordinance_n of_o our_o mediocrity_n thou_o shall_v join_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o that_o here_o we_o see_v a_o sentence_n plain_o and_o absolute_o give_v and_o yet_o under_o these_o term_n of_o humility_n there_o be_v no_o disparagement_n or_o inequality_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n 3._o council_n milevit_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la innocent_n to_o 1._o council_n &_o apud_fw-la august_n epist_n 92._o council_n milevit_fw-la c._n 3._o see_v say_v they_o that_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o special_a grace_n have_v place_v thou_o in_o that_o apostolic_a see_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o that_o our_o negligence_n will_v be_v condemn_v if_o we_o shall_v conceal_v anything_o from_o thou_o which_o make_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o our_o fear_n excuse_v as_o if_o we_o doubt_v of_o thy_o good_a acceptance_n we_o therefore_o entreat_v thou_o to_o use_v thy_o pastoral_n care_n and_o diligence_n in_o these_o so_o great_a peril_n and_o danger_n of_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v do_v in_o these_o case_n of_o heresy_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o west_n as_o they_o have_v already_o do_v in_o the_o east_n but_o when_o they_o see_v that_o upon_o their_o round_a deal_n with_o they_o in_o the_o east_n he_o be_v the_o rather_o incline_v to_o absolve_v they_o in_o the_o west_n they_o make_v short_a work_n and_o pass_v this_o decree_n in_o full_a synod_n whosoever_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v available_a only_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n past_a and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o help_n to_o we_o against_o sin_n hereafter_o let_v he_o be_v anathema_n and_o thereupon_o add_v they_o far_o this_o error_n and_o impiety_n which_o have_v every_o where_o so_o many_o follower_n and_o abettor_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v anathematise_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v it_o be_v high_a time_n innocent_a that_o now_o you_o show_v yourself_o and_o do_v your_o duty_n all_o which_o innocent_a as_o one_o not_o willing_a to_o break_v with_o they_o pass_v over_o and_o seem_v not_o to_o understand_v but_o as_o if_o they_o have_v flee_v to_o he_o as_o to_o their_o superior_a frame_v they_o a_o answer_n only_o to_o further_o his_o own_o ambition_n 91_o apud_fw-la august_n epist_n 90._o &_o to_o 1_o council_n apud_fw-la august_n epist_n 91_o you_o have_v say_v he_o well_o observe_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o not_o tread_v under_o foot_n that_o which_o they_o not_o in_o humane_a wisdom_n but_o by_o divine_a order_n have_v establish_v namely_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o place_n though_o never_o so_o remote_a shall_v for_o final_a conclusion_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o audience_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o again_o you_o have_v 92._o apud_fw-la august_n epist_n 92._o say_v he_o have_v due_a regard_n of_o the_o apostolic_a honour_n i_o say_v of_o he_o which_o have_v the_o charge_n and_o care_n of_o all_o other_o church_n in_o ask_v advice_n of_o he_o in_o these_o perplexity_n and_o intricate_a cause_n follow_v herein_o the_o ancient_a canon_n which_o you_o as_o well_o as_o myself_o know_v to_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o good_a innocent_a and_o when_o be_v it_o so_o observe_v for_o see_v you_o not_o the_o contrary_a in_o africa_n itself_o and_o in_o these_o two_o last_o counsel_n practise_v but_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o they_o use_v he_o any_o better_a in_o his_o matter_n of_o appeal_v the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n speak_v plain_o 22._o council_n milevit_fw-la can._n 22._o it_o have_v be_v say_v they_o think_v fit_a in_o the_o case_n of_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o inferior_a clergy_n man_n if_o in_o their_o cause_n they_o complain_v of_o the_o wrongful_a judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o then_o the_o next_o adjoin_v bishop_n shall_v hear_v and_o end_v their_o cause_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o if_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o appeal_v from_o they_o also_o yet_o that_o they_o appeal_v not_o but_o only_o to_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o province_n but_o if_o any_o shall_v presume_v to_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n that_o no_o man_n presume_v to_o receive_v that_o man_n to_o his_o communion_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o the_o like_a decree_n be_v make_v in_o other_o church_n of_o the_o west_n howsoever_o gratian_n 35._o 2._o q._n 6._o c._n 35._o to_o save_v the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n add_v these_o word_n unless_o say_v he_o they_o appeal_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n whereas_o it_o be_v proper_o against_o that_o see_v that_o they_o raise_v this_o countermure_n and_o bulwark_n of_o defence_n bellarmine_n yet_o go_v more_o fine_o to_o work_v and_o say_v that_o this_o canon_n concern_v only_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o the_o canon_n next_o precedent_n which_o proper_o provide_v for_o the_o case_n of_o bishop_n be_v link_v with_o this_o as_o well_o in_o reason_n as_o in_o order_n &_o the_o conclusion_n be_v general_a whosoever_o shall_v offer_v to_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n etc._n etc._n without_o any_o distinction_n between_o priest_n and_o bishop_n african_n council_n carthag_n apud_fw-la balsam_n can._n 31._o ex_fw-la council_n african_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v note_v this_o diverse_a lection_n alias_o that_o they_o appeal_v not_o beyond_o the_o sea_n but_o to_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o their_o province_n as_o it_o have_v often_o be_v ordain_v in_o case_n of_o bishop_n and_o so_o be_v all_o sort_n of_o clergy_n man_n comprise_v and_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v this_o canon_n read_v in_o the_o greek_a copy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o may_v not_o forget_v that_o saint_n augustine_n himself_o be_v present_a at_o this_o council_n all_o these_o thing_n stand_v as_o they_o do_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o argument_n baronius_n hence_o draw_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n and_o africa_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o first_o say_v he_o in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n 55._o baron_fw-fr to_o 5._o a_o 497._o art_n 55._o can_v 48._o it_o be_v decree_v that_o concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o donatist_n syricius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o simplicianus_n of_o milan_n shall_v be_v consult_v the_o one_o say_v he_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o his_o person_n whereas_o the_o father_n themselves_o make_v no_o such_o difference_n but_o say_v they_o we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o consult_v our_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n priest_n syricius_n and_o simplicianus_n and_o no_o marvel_n see_v that_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n want_v fit_a minister_n to_o furnish_v his_o church_n write_v joint_o to_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o venerius_n bishop_n of_o milan_n to_o supply_v his_o want_n call_v they_o holy_a brethren_n second_o sedis_fw-la council_n carthag_n 3._o ca._n 26._o distinct_a 99_o ca._n primae_fw-la sedis_fw-la he_o take_v on_o because_o we_o allege_v the_o canon_n primae_fw-la sedis_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v prince_n or_o the_o chief_a of_o priest_n or_o high_a priest_n or_o by_o any_o such_o like_a name_n and_o i_o will_v know_v whether_o these_o be_v not_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o canon_n itself_o or_o be_v they_o not_o so_o report_v by_o gratian_n in_o the_o decree_n yea_o but_o he_o will_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v extend_v they_o to_o rome_n especial_o
do_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n chalced._n extat_fw-la inter_fw-la epist_n illustr_n council_n chalced._n and_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o this_o anatolius_n in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n leo_n upon_o this_o occasion_n brand_v pope_n leo_n with_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o censure_v he_o to_o be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o priesthood_n 12._o progression_n of_o sundry_a variance_n which_o fall_v out_o between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n after_o this_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v ever_o debate_v continue_v between_o the_o two_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n the_o one_o refuse_v a_o superior_a the_o other_o not_o admit_v of_o a_o equal_a the_o one_o seek_v to_o stretch_v the_o wing_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o east_n the_o other_o over_o all_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o alexandria_n seek_v to_o cross_v the_o attempt_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v late_o start_v up_o to_o this_o authority_n and_o be_v therefore_o the_o more_o obnoxious_a to_o hate_v and_o envy_n have_v recourse_n oftentimes_o to_o he_o of_o rome_n and_o as_o it_o have_v be_v in_o despite_n of_o the_o one_o subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o other_o 1._o baron_fw-fr vol._n 6._o a_o 482._o art_n 1._o whence_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o baronius_n his_o champion_n for_o he_o take_v no_o small_a advantage_n for_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o simplicius_n hereupon_o give_v confirmation_n to_o calendinus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n 14._o simplicius_n epist_n 14._o have_v no_o other_o proof_n or_o ground_n than_o this_o that_o simplicius_n in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o he_o to_o acatius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n say_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v under_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a 10._o euagrius_n li._n 3._o c._n 10._o the_o priesthood_n of_o calendius_n but_o euagrius_n a_o historian_n of_o that_o time_n say_v simple_o without_o any_o reference_n unto_o any_o that_o calendius_n undertake_v the_o stern_a of_o that_o see_v and_o persuade_v all_o which_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o timotheus_n as_o against_o one_o which_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o who_o predecessor_n stephen_n be_v notorious_o install_v by_o acatius_n as_o baronius_n himself_o affirm_v but_o he_o add_v far_a that_o simplicius_n have_v make_v acatius_n his_o vicar_n general_a in_o the_o east_n his_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o simplicius_n upon_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n attolle_v simplic_n epist_n 17_o delegatum_fw-la tibi_fw-la munus_fw-la attend_v sensus_fw-la tuos_fw-la prudenter_fw-la attolle_v complain_v to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o advertise_v he_o thereof_o will_v he_o to_o behave_v himself_o wise_o in_o the_o charge_n which_o be_v delegated_a unto_o he_o commit_v then_o it_o be_v but_o by_o who_o must_v we_o needs_o understand_v that_o by_o he_o and_o why_o not_o as_o well_o either_o by_o the_o church_n or_o by_o the_o people_n see_v nothing_o be_v express_v and_o far_o these_o be_v simplicius_n his_o own_o word_n and_o if_o he_o do_v delegate_v such_o a_o charge_n unto_o he_o yet_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v that_o the_o other_o accept_v of_o it_o as_o from_o he_o simplic_n acatius_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la simplic_n and_o i_o will_v know_v whether_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o simplicius_n he_o ever_o call_v he_o by_o any_o high_a title_n than_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o timotheus_n he_o profess_v that_o as_o for_o his_o so_o great_a a_o dignity_n he_o hold_v it_o only_o from_o christ_n the_o prince_n of_o priest_n and_o a_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v by_o the_o complaint_n which_o simplicius_n make_v unto_o he_o 1._o simplic_n epist_n 1._o that_o if_o ever_o he_o do_v make_v he_o offer_v of_o such_o a_o office_n he_o make_v but_o little_a reckon_n of_o his_o kindness_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v when_o he_o offer_v to_o make_v zeno_n bishop_n of_o sevile_n his_o vicar_n in_o those_o part_n simplicius_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o acatius_n speak_v of_o one_o john_n who_o be_v elect_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o say_v timotheus_n it_o remain_v only_o say_v he_o that_o after_o our_o thanksgiving_n unto_o god_n he_o shall_v by_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a receive_v his_o desire_a confirmation_n whereupon_o baronius_n set_v his_o mark_n in_o the_o margin_n 14._o baron_fw-fr a_o 482._o vol._n 6._o art_n 14._o with_o these_o word_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o confirm_v the_o patriarch_n and_o do_v thou_o see_v o_o reader_n say_v he_o that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v that_o the_o election_n neither_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n neither_o yet_o of_o antioch_n be_v hold_v for_o good_a without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o he_o produce_v no_o one_o canon_n to_o this_o purpose_n or_o any_o one_o case_n wherein_o it_o be_v so_o practise_v nay_o we_o find_v that_o when_o acatius_n make_v light_a of_o his_o command_n and_o when_o he_o be_v will_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n to_o bear_v out_o petrus_n moggus_n against_o john_n who_o be_v a_o orthodox_n bishop_n he_o qualify_v his_o stile_n with_o fair_a word_n and_o reason_n it_o be_v reason_n say_v he_o that_o one_o condemn_v by_o public_a decree_n mean_v this_o petrus_n moggus_n shall_v also_o be_v acquit_v in_o a_o common_a assembly_n where_o be_v then_o this_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n yea_o but_o in_o the_o end_n say_v baronius_n when_o this_o john_n be_v depose_v be_v appeal_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o athanasius_n have_v do_v before_o he_o and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o vouch_v liberatus_n the_o archdeacon_n 18._o liberatus_n in_o brevia_fw-la c._n 18._o who_o dwell_v too_o far_o off_o to_o be_v a_o good_a witness_n in_o this_o cause_n but_o if_o his_o appeal_n be_v no_o other_o than_o be_v that_o of_o athanasius_n we_o be_v at_o a_o accord_n for_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o athanasius_n do_v not_o appeal_v in_o form_n of_o law_n as_o we_o common_o call_v appeal_v but_o have_v only_o recourse_n unto_o he_o and_o so_o euagrius_n expound_v it_o unto_o we_o john_n say_v he_o as_o zacharie_n report_v 15_o euagr._fw-la histor_n eccle._n c._n 12._o &_o 15_o have_v give_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n take_v to_o the_o emperor_n be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n whence_o the_o emperor_n command_v he_o to_o be_v banish_v who_o fly_v thence_o go_v unto_o old_a rome_n where_o he_o make_v much_o trouble_n say_v that_o for_o observe_v the_o decree_n of_o leo_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n he_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o his_o see_n where_o you_o see_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o appeal_n or_o of_o judicial_a proceed_n for_o say_v he_o simplicius_n move_v with_o these_o word_n write_v unto_o zeno_n thereupon_o who_o send_v he_o word_n again_o that_o he_o be_v depose_v indeed_o but_o that_o it_o be_v for_o perjury_n and_o short_o after_o simplicius_n die_v and_o john_n withdraw_v himself_o into_o italy_n where_o the_o bishopric_n of_o nola_n be_v confer_v upon_o he_o and_o liberatus_n also_o say_v that_o acatius_n by_o his_o letter_n require_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n that_o if_o any_o of_o his_o clergy_n flee_v unto_o he_o confugerint_fw-la ad_fw-la eundem_fw-la confugerint_fw-la he_o will_v be_v please_v not_o to_o receive_v they_o which_o be_v the_o proper_a term_n use_v in_o these_o and_o the_o like_a case_n opposition_n all_o these_o contention_n about_o jurisdiction_n proceed_v from_o that_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n 472._o an._n 472._o to_o which_o the_o pope_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n stand_v and_o yet_o they_o never_o talk_v unto_o we_o but_o of_o counsel_n especial_o of_o those_o four_o first_o general_a synod_n which_o they_o use_v common_o to_o parallel_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n come_v forth_o a_o certain_a edict_n from_o leo_n the_o emperor_n eccles_n leo_fw-la imperat._n li._n 16._o c._n de_fw-fr sa●ros_n eccles_n in_o this_o manner_n we_o decree_v and_o ordain_v that_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o this_o most_o religious_a city_n mother_n of_o our_o piety_n and_o of_o all_o christian_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o orthodox_n religion_n and_o the_o most_o holy_a see_v of_o this_o royal_a city_n meaning_n constantinople_n in_o regard_n that_o she_o be_v the_o royal_a city_n shall_v have_v all_o privilege_n and_o honour_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o bishop_n and_o take_v of_o place_n before_o all_o other_o and_o all_o other_o point_n whatsoever_o which_o they_o now_o
his_o predecessor_n have_v do_v before_o he_o 14._o vita_fw-la ludovici_fw-la aimon_n l._n 5._o c._n 14._o why_o come_v he_o not_o unto_o i_o all_o this_o while_n the_o bishop_n say_v if_o he_o be_v come_v to_o excommunicate_v we_o will_v send_v he_o away_o excommunicate_v again_o and_o hincmar_n archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n write_v to_o pope_n adrian_n the_o second_o 16._o flodoard_v in_o hist_n rhemensi_fw-la jdem_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 16._o tell_v he_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o gregory_n come_v into_o france_n with_o a_o evil_a intent_n and_o purpose_v to_o bear_v out_o the_o child_n against_o the_o father_n he_o come_v say_v he_o into_o france_n and_o after_o his_o come_v our_o peace_n continue_v not_o also_o he_o return_v not_o with_o so_o good_a credit_n as_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v and_o as_o his_o predecessor_n be_v wont_v before_o he_o and_o the_o chronicle_n of_o s._n denis_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n say_v he_o prevail_v so_o far_o diony_n chron._n diony_n as_o to_o unite_v all_o the_o son_n against_o he_o and_o malicious_o make_v the_o apostolic_a of_o rome_n to_o come_v into_o france_n under_o colour_n of_o piety_n as_o it_o have_v be_v to_o mediate_v a_o peace_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o child_n but_o the_o truth_n itself_o afterward_o appear_v and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o his_o come_n be_v only_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o king_n and_o the_o bishop_n if_o they_o support_v the_o father_n and_o be_v not_o in_o every_o respect_n obedient_a to_o the_o son_n but_o when_o the_o bishop_n hear_v say_v this_o they_o protest_v that_o they_o will_v never_o obey_v he_o for_o fear_n of_o his_o excommunication_n for_o say_v they_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n be_v far_o different_a from_o this_o course_n and_o when_o lewis_n be_v full_o reestablish_v in_o his_o kingdom_n not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o gregory_n but_o as_o the_o historian_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rheimes_n report_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n gregory_n unable_a to_o maintain_v those_o bishop_n who_o he_o have_v draw_v into_o this_o practice_n they_o be_v glad_a though_o under_o a_o most_o gracious_a sovereign_n yet_o to_o save_v themselves_o in_o italy_n from_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n the_o other_o be_v fain_a to_o confess_v the_o action_n and_o plead_v guilty_a acknowledge_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o the_o place_n they_o hold_v and_o in_o effect_n to_o be_v depose_v especial_o hebo_n archbishop_n of_o rheimes_n and_o agobard_v of_o lion_n and_o this_o be_v in_o those_o day_n all_o the_o fear_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n have_v of_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n and_o in_o this_o time_n it_o be_v that_o claud_n of_o turin_n teach_v open_o both_o by_o tongue_n and_o pen_n that_o he_o be_v not_o apostolical_a who_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o a_o apostle_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n and_o this_o reach_v unto_o the_o death_n of_o lewis_n 839._o an._n 839._o which_o fall_v in_o the_o year_n 839._o add_v we_o hereunto_o that_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n tread_v the_o path_n of_o charlemaigne_n and_o other_o his_o predecessor_n with_o the_o advice_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o learned_a of_o his_o kingdom_n enact_v law_n for_o the_o better_a order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o dominion_n not_o only_o concern_v their_o policy_n and_o government_n but_o also_o touch_v faith_n without_o ask_v leave_n or_o expect_v a_o mandamus_fw-la from_o the_o pope_n whatsoever_o baronius_n and_o his_o benedict_n the_o levite_n prate_v unto_o we_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o article_n of_o lewis_n capitularia_fw-la capitularia_fw-la and_o the_o abbot_n andegisus_fw-la who_o collect_v those_o law_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o they_o also_o he_o assemble_v counsel_n within_o his_o own_o estate_n at_o thionuille_n at_o aix_n and_o pavia_n where_o you_o shall_v ever_o find_v council_n extat_fw-la ante_fw-la council_n paris_n to._n 3._o council_n by_o the_o command_n by_o the_o wholesome_a command_n of_o the_o glorious_a prince_n by_o the_o grace_n or_o gift_n of_o god_n emperor_n etc._n etc._n make_v book_n of_o this_o subject_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o aix_n la_fw-fr chapella_n the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n speak_v of_o the_o clergy_n in_o general_a and_o say_v by_o they_o be_v we_o make_v christian_n who_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o their_o hand_n judge_v in_o a_o sort_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o so_o have_v no_o need_n to_o be_v behold_v to_o rome_n for_o the_o key_n 828._o an._n 828._o but_o in_o the_o year_n 828_o we_o find_v a_o particular_a edict_n of_o lewis_n whereby_o to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n incense_v at_o that_o time_n against_o he_o and_o his_o people_n for_o the_o many_o corruption_n grow_v in_o among_o they_o he_o command_v a_o fast_a to_o be_v hold_v throughout_o his_o kingdom_n and_o beside_o sundry_a other_o counsel_n he_o call_v four_o several_a synod_n for_o the_o reformation_n proper_o of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n namely_o at_o mence_n at_o paris_n at_o lion_n and_o at_o tolousa_n there_o to_o handle_v discuss_v and_o find_v out_o thing_n belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n council_n council_n aquisgra_fw-la 3._o to_o council_n what_o the_o prince_n what_o the_o people_n hold_v either_o answerable_a or_o contrary_a to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n what_o have_v be_v retain_v what_o omit_v either_o in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a how_o the_o clergy_n behave_v themselves_o wherein_o they_o err_v and_o depart_v away_o from_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o all_o this_o no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n baronius_n make_v much_o of_o certain_a epistle_n write_v about_o this_o time_n by_o a_o monk_n of_o greece_n name_v theodorus_n with_o his_o complice_n in_o idolatry_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n sequent_a baron_fw-fr a_o 817._o art_n 21_o 22._o &_o sequent_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o haut_fw-fr title_n which_o he_o give_v he_o magnify_v he_o above_o all_o other_o bishop_n it_o be_v a_o very_a sufficient_a answer_n to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o monk_n offend_v with_o his_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o take_v away_o his_o image_n and_o therefore_o no_o matter_n what_o he_o say_v but_o yet_o examine_v we_o his_o letter_n angelis_n coaequandum_fw-la angelis_n first_o he_o call_v the_o pope_n equal_a to_o the_o angel_n will_v baronius_n abet_v this_o flattery_n see_v that_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n after_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n say_v thou_o have_v make_v he_o little_o lesser_a than_o the_o angel_n how_o can_v he_o make_v the_o pope_n equal_a to_o they_o but_o as_o he_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n as_o god_n himself_o as_o he_o that_o make_v himself_o god_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n 2._o second_o he_o call_v he_o the_o great_a light_n prince_n of_o bishop_n and_o apostolic_a pope_n in_o that_o he_o call_v he_o prince_n of_o bishop_n it_o import_v nothing_o but_o the_o primacy_n of_o his_o see_n but_o you_o shall_v see_v how_o this_o same_o monk_n write_v at_o the_o same_o time_n scarce_o change_v a_o pen_n between_o to_o other_o patriarch_n for_o to_o he_o of_o alexandria_n he_o write_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n of_o father_n and_o light_n of_o light_n do_v not_o these_o word_n weigh_v down_o those_o other_o of_o great_a light_n and_o as_o he_o call_v the_o one_o pope_n of_o rome_n verticem_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la verticem_fw-la so_o do_v he_o the_o other_o pope_n of_o alexandria_n as_o he_o call_v he_o of_o rome_n apostolic_a so_o the_o other_o the_o crown_n or_o top_n of_o all_o apostolikes_n and_o what_o advantage_n now_o have_v baronius_n get_v for_o the_o pope_n yes_o say_v he_o for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o supreme_a light_n and_o the_o other_o be_v call_v only_o the_o light_n of_o light_n first_o what_o fair_a play_n to_o turn_v a_o die_v and_o whereas_o but_o two_o page_n before_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n the_o monk_n call_v he_o only_o magnum_fw-la lumen_fw-la a_o great_a light_n now_o to_o make_v he_o say_v supremam_fw-la lumen_fw-la the_o supreme_a light_n second_o who_o know_v not_o that_o light_n of_o light_n in_o all_o tongue_n especial_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o scripture_n impli_v more_o than_o a_o great_a light_n baronius_n his_o reply_n be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v so_o call_v in_o regard_n that_o cyrill_n his_o quondam_a predecessor_n be_v legate_n a_o latere_fw-la for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n first_o that_o have_v already_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a second_o
the_o popish_a history_n do_v witness_v that_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o pass_n and_o so_o ambitious_a in_o those_o day_n that_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n by_o fraud_n by_o force_n or_o by_o corruption_n it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a practice_n for_o the_o successor_n to_o reverse_v the_o act_n of_o his_o predecessor_n thereby_o revenge_v the_o delay_n of_o his_o own_o advancement_n 6._o platina_n in_o stephan_n 6._o whereof_o we_o need_v no_o other_o author_n but_o platina_n himself_o but_o what_o think_v we_o do_v the_o christian_a world_n then_o say_v when_o they_o see_v one_o pope_n dig_v another_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n degrade_v those_o bishop_n which_o another_o have_v consecrate_v the_o act_n which_o one_o make_v by_o another_o disallow_v all_o ordinance_n vocation_n mission_n and_o the_o whole_a administration_n revoke_v and_o utter_o abolish_v and_o one_o synod_n to_o contradict_v and_o overthrow_v another_o and_o yet_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o bold_o and_o peremptory_o use_v these_o word_n per_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la iudicium_fw-la edicimus_fw-la interdicimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o say_v and_o unsay_v command_n and_o forbid_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n then_o if_o you_o believe_v they_o must_v be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o and_o so_o must_v the_o truth_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o stick_v not_o bold_o to_o affirm_v 8._o d._n 19_o c._n enim_fw-la vero_fw-la luitprand_fw-fr l._n 1._o c._n 8._o that_o whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v appoint_v or_o ordain_v must_v be_v for_o ever_o and_o irrevocable_o observe_v of_o all_o luitprand_n be_v great_o offend_v with_o the_o fact_n of_o formosus_fw-la ingenious_o acknowledge_v the_o error_n of_o stephen_n most_o holy_a father_n say_v he_o hereby_o you_o may_v know_v how_o wicked_o he_o deal_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o abrogat_fw-la all_o those_o ordinance_n that_o be_v make_v by_o formosus_fw-la because_o they_o that_o receive_v the_o apostolical_a benediction_n of_o judas_n before_o his_o treason_n be_v not_o after_o it_o deprive_v thereof_o except_o it_o be_v by_o their_o own_o sin_n for_o that_o benediction_n that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o minister_n be_v not_o infuse_v by_o that_o priest_n that_o be_v see_v but_o by_o he_o that_o be_v invisible_a jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n bellarmine_n go_v about_o to_o salve_v the_o matter_n say_v that_o he_o degrade_v not_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o formosus_fw-la by_o a_o formal_a decree_n but_o that_o only_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la he_o make_v they_o to_o be_v reorder_v a_o command_n say_v he_o 12._o bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 12._o that_o do_v not_o proceed_v of_o ignorance_n but_o of_o hatred_n against_o formosus_fw-la but_o yet_o we_o find_v by_o their_o own_o author_n that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o synod_n celebrate_v at_o rome_n and_o by_o a_o express_a decree_n but_o if_o such_o tergiversation_n may_v serve_v turn_n what_o wickedness_n be_v there_o that_o can_v be_v defend_v this_o heresy_n of_o stephen_n yea_o of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n be_v it_o but_o small_a when_o stephen_n in_o his_o synod_n declare_v formosus_fw-la neither_o to_o be_v nor_o to_o have_v be_v pope_n who_o i_o say_v make_v himself_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deceive_v in_o his_o knowledge_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n let_v any_o man_n look_v into_o his_o conscience_n and_o his_o knowledge_n whether_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o light_a heresy_n or_o no._n but_o here_o he_o will_v follow_v sigebert_n for_o his_o author_n chron._n an._n 902._o sigebertus_n in_o chron._n that_o notwithstanding_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o great_a part_n stephen_n the_o sixth_o degrade_v those_o that_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o formosus_fw-la and_o be_v he_o not_o therefore_o so_o much_o the_o more_o a_o heretic_n by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o obstinate_a he_o be_v to_o be_v order_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o brethren_n but_o sigebert_n in_o the_o year_n 902_o peremptory_o affirm_v that_o all_o his_o ordinance_n be_v to_o be_v make_v void_a and_o do_v other_o thing_n against_o he_o horrible_a to_o be_v speak_v this_o than_o be_v a_o decree_n 903._o an._n 903._o and_o in_o the_o year_n 903_o speak_v of_o the_o synod_n hold_v by_o pope_n john_n at_o ravenna_n the_o archbishop_n of_o france_n be_v present_a before_o they_o say_v he_o be_v the_o synod_n burn_v which_o stephen_n have_v make_v for_o the_o condemnation_n of_o formosus_fw-la this_o decree_n be_v conclude_v in_o the_o next_o full_a synod_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 900_o he_o affirm_v that_o by_o this_o occasion_n this_o question_n have_v be_v for_o many_o year_n dispute_v in_o the_o church_n not_o without_o great_a scandal_n the_o one_o part_n judge_v the_o consecration_n of_o those_o that_o formosus_fw-la have_v ordain_v to_o be_v nothing_o the_o other_o by_o a_o more_o holy_a counsel_n judge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o force_n this_o be_v a_o question_n of_o law_n not_o of_o fact_n and_o consequent_o the_o solution_n of_o bellarmine_n altogether_o void_a 4._o baron_fw-fr to_o 10._o a_o 897._o art_n 4._o a_o 900._o art_n 2_o 3_o 4._o true_o baronius_n speak_v of_o these_o time_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o horror_n and_o call_v they_o infelicissima_fw-la &_o luctuocissima_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la tempora_fw-la the_o most_o unfortunat_a and_o lamentable_a time_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n worse_a than_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n heretic_n schismatic_n but_o he_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o the_o tusculan_a prince_n then_o powerful_a in_o rome_n as_o if_o the_o other_o part_n have_v yield_v pope_n more_o holy_a and_o as_o if_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o have_v not_o enter_v by_o theft_n and_o consequent_o come_v in_o at_o the_o window_n and_o not_o at_o the_o door_n when_o say_v he_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n suffer_v the_o prince_n of_o tuscan_a to_o bear_v rule_n whether_o by_o money_n or_o by_o arm_n over_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o rome_n they_o thrust_v into_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n the_o throne_n of_o christ_n man_n monstrous_a and_o infamous_a in_o their_o life_n dissolute_a in_o their_o manner_n and_o wicked_a and_o villainous_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o then_o the_o queen_n of_o nation_n so_o he_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v rob_v of_o the_o garment_n of_o her_o glory_n and_o joy_n sit_v in_o heaviness_n mourning_n and_o lament_v let_v the_o reader_n here_o note_n what_o help_v they_o give_v we_o to_o argue_v against_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o their_o pretend_a succession_n when_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n he_o here_o speak_v of_o ten_o pope_n that_o do_v immediate_o succeed_v one_o another_o but_o he_o add_v that_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o to_o give_v the_o world_n to_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n as_o a_o commonwealth_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o wisdom_n or_o virtue_n of_o those_o which_o govern_v but_o from_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o make_v it_o firm_a and_o constant_a for_o ever_o why_o then_o shall_v it_o seem_v strange_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o interruption_n in_o this_o personal_a succession_n for_o have_v he_o ever_o see_v family_n continue_v by_o monster_n and_o when_o they_o happen_v in_o the_o church_n as_o he_o acknowledge_v be_v not_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v acknowledge_v therein_o which_o even_o of_o stone_n raise_v seed_n unto_o abraham_n and_o beat_v down_o antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n 6._o jbid._n art_n 6._o moreover_o baronius_n acknowledge_v that_o while_o stephen_n dig_v up_o the_o carcase_n of_o formosus_fw-la the_o church_n of_o latran_n the_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o devil_n be_v utter_o overthrow_v to_o the_o ground_n from_o the_o altar_n to_o the_o gate_n even_o that_o say_v he_o in_o which_o pope_n stephen_n keep_v his_o residence_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o be_v admonish_v by_o this_o destroy_a angel_n that_o we_o be_v hereafter_o to_o seek_v here_o the_o rubbish_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o let_v we_o forget_v that_o stephen_n for_o his_o wickedness_n be_v strangle_v in_o prison_n and_o nevertheless_o john_n the_o ten_o his_o successor_n call_v he_o stephen_n of_o happy_a memory_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ravenna_n which_o say_v baronius_n be_v do_v in_o reverence_n of_o his_o predecessor_n 4._o baron_fw-fr vol_fw-it 10._o a_o 904._o art_n 4._o we_o may_v rather_o say_v because_o all_o impiety_n be_v with_o they_o piety_n that_o virtue_n and_o vice_n be_v with_o they_o only_o measure_v by_o commodity_n but_o at_o this_o time_n theophilact_n the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n
the_o only_a man_n in_o that_o age_n famous_a in_o divinity_n who_o expound_v these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 16._o theophil_n in_o matth._n c._n 16._o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n because_o say_v he_o peter_n confess_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n say_v that_o that_o confession_n that_o he_o make_v shall_v become_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o such_o sort_n that_o every_o man_n that_o will_v build_v the_o house_n of_o faith_n must_v necessary_o put_v this_o confession_n for_o his_o foundation_n etc._n etc._n yea_o say_v he_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v make_v the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o church_n insomuch_o that_o if_o we_o be_v build_v upon_o this_o confession_n of_o christ_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n nor_o our_o sin_n shall_v prevail_v against_o us._n and_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o understand_v not_o this_o privilege_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o every_o christian_a that_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n upon_o these_o word_n to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n he_o say_v 20._o joh._n 20._o the_o key_n that_o bound_v and_o lose_v forgive_v and_o aggravate_v our_o sin_n for_o they_o that_o like_o peter_n be_v think_v worthy_a episcopal_a grace_n have_v power_n to_o lose_v and_o retain_v sin_n for_o though_o it_o be_v only_o say_v to_o peter_n to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v yet_o that_o power_n be_v once_o give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v who_o sin_n you_o remit_v shall_v be_v remit_v for_o that_o word_n i_o will_v give_v signify_v a_o future_a time_n that_o be_v after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o to_o show_v that_o he_o think_v the_o key_n not_o to_o be_v attribute_v more_o to_o peter_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o 2._o theophil_n ad_fw-la gal._n c._n 2._o paul_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v equal_a to_o peter_n many_o the_o like_a place_n there_o be_v in_o this_o author_n though_o he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o come_v last_o and_o of_o those_o as_o we_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o who_o writing_n some_o have_v take_v care_n to_o corrupt_v the_o better_a to_o accommodat_fw-la they_o to_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o time_n 37._o progression_n of_o the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o italy_n through_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o wilfulness_n of_o the_o people_n of_o theodora_n and_o her_o daughter_n three_o famous_a harlot_n that_o rule_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n at_o their_o pleasure_n of_o the_o abominable_a and_o wicked_a life_n of_o john_n the_o thirteen_o here_o we_o enter_v into_o a_o age_n which_o be_v renown_v only_o for_o this_o that_o in_o the_o state_n of_o italy_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n in_o the_o church_n darkness_n and_o in_o the_o pope_n idleness_n and_o a_o headlong_a licentious_a liberty_n to_o commit_v all_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o baronius_n begin_v his_o history_n with_o these_o word_n a_o iron_n age_n barren_a of_o all_o goodness_n and_o a_o leaden_a age_n abound_v with_o all_o wickedness_n for_o as_o touch_v the_o state_n the_o emperor_n lambert_n have_v be_v traitorous_o slay_v as_o berengarius_fw-la a_o prince_n commend_v for_o his_o great_a virtue_n think_v he_o have_v overcome_v all_o his_o affair_n benedict_n the_o three_o provoke_v by_o the_o marquesse_n albert_n call_v lewis_n the_o three_o the_o son_n of_o the_o emperor_n arnulph_n against_o he_o and_o crown_v he_o at_o rome_n but_o berengarius_fw-la surprise_v he_o upon_o the_o sudden_a at_o verona_n and_o have_v take_v he_o pluck_v out_o his_o eye_n and_o settle_a himself_o in_o the_o empire_n for_o many_o year_n notwithstanding_o his_o prosperous_a success_n be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o pope_n assist_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o marquesse_n albert_n than_o arbitrator_n at_o rome_n the_o hungarian_n on_o the_o other_o part_n and_o the_o saracen_n without_o resistance_n trouble_v all_o italy_n neither_o be_v there_o want_v malcontent_n who_o call_v in_o strange_a prince_n rodulph_n k._n of_o burgoigne_n hugh_n k._n of_o arles_n who_o as_o it_o be_v by_o turn_n enter_v italy_n with_o their_o power_n crown_v themselves_o at_o rome_n but_o yet_o with_o condition_n to_o ratify_v the_o pretend_a donation_n and_o because_o they_o have_v need_n of_o the_o pope_n help_n be_v content_a to_o remit_v much_o of_o their_o authority_n and_o yet_o speed_v never_o the_o better_a and_o as_o touch_v the_o church_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_v in_o so_o great_a a_o perturbation_n of_o all_o thing_n how_o pale_a the_o face_n of_o it_o be_v especial_o in_o italy_n where_o all_o this_o while_n there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n of_o fame_n that_o appear_v nor_o action_n that_o have_v any_o show_n of_o care_n in_o it_o of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o that_o have_v write_v the_o history_n think_v they_o have_v sufficient_o commend_v a_o pope_n when_o they_o have_v report_v he_o to_o have_v do_v nothing_o so_o natural_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o for_o they_o to_o have_v do_v evil_a in_o the_o year_n 904_o benedict_n the_o four_o die_v 904._o an._n 904._o and_o contrary_a to_o all_o law_n say_v they_o leo_n the_o five_o succeed_v who_o after_o forty_o day_n be_v depose_v by_o his_o chaplain_n christopher_n &_o novo_fw-la exemplo_fw-la 5._o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg._n jtal._n li._n 6._o platina_n in_o benedict_n 4._o &_o leo._n 5._o by_o a_o new_a example_n say_v sigonius_n malis_fw-la artibus_fw-la by_o deceit_n and_o cunning_a say_v platina_n settle_v himself_o in_o his_o place_n sergius_n the_o three_o be_v now_o twice_o drive_v from_o the_o popedom_n make_v friendship_n with_o the_o marquesse_n albert_n and_o so_o supplant_v he_o and_o place_v himself_o in_o his_o throne_n and_o then_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n inveigh_v against_o the_o memory_n of_o formosus_fw-la and_o pronounce_v his_o act_n to_o be_v void_a insomuch_o that_o bellarmine_n labour_v no_o less_o in_o the_o justify_n of_o he_o than_o of_o stephen_n then_o be_v there_o no_o more_o question_n either_o of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n here_o say_v platina_n consider_v how_o much_o these_o have_v degenerate_v from_o their_o ancestor_n for_o they_o like_v holy_a man_n contemn_v such_o dignity_n as_o be_v free_o offer_v they_o and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o prayer_n and_o preach_v these_o with_o corruption_n and_o ambition_n seek_v the_o popedom_n and_o have_v get_v it_o lay_v aside_o all_o divine_a worship_n no_o otherwise_o than_o cruel_a tyrants_n exercise_n their_o malice_n one_o against_o the_o other_o that_o with_o the_o better_a security_n they_o may_v afterward_o follow_v their_o own_o pleasure_n when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o body_n of_o power_n to_o bridle_v their_o sin_n 911._o an._n 911._o anastasius_n in_o the_o year_n 911_o succeed_v sergius_n 913._o an._n 913._o and_o he_o landus_n in_o the_o year_n 913_o and_o he_o succeed_v john_n the_o eleven_o the_o archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n commendable_a only_o in_o this_o that_o they_o live_v not_o long_o sequ_fw-la platina_n in_o christoph_n 1._o &_o sequ_fw-la god_n say_v platina_n take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n as_o so_o many_o monster_n but_o sigonius_n without_o malice_n speak_v thus_o of_o john_n that_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n be_v assemble_v together_o for_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o this_o election_n according_a to_o law_n for_o albertus_n the_o marquesse_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o theodora_n his_o mother_n in_o law_n not_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o ravenna_n nor_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o his_o own_o riches_n 13._o luitprand_fw-fr l._n 2._o c._n 13._o nominate_v for_o a_o successor_n john_n the_o archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n luitprand_v who_o live_v in_o those_o time_n speak_v somewhat_o loud_o he_o obtain_v say_v he_o the_o popedom_n by_o such_o horrible_a wickedness_n contra_fw-la ius_fw-la fasque_fw-la against_o all_o law_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a theodora_n a_o impudent_a harlot_n obtain_v virago-like_a the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v two_o daughter_n marozia_n and_o theodora_n not_o only_o equal_a unto_o she_o but_o far_o surpass_v she_o in_o their_o lascivious_a life_n of_o one_o of_o these_o namely_o marozia_n pope_n sergius_n have_v in_o adultery_n john_n who_o after_o the_o death_n of_o john_n of_o ravenna_n get_v the_o popedom_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o twelve_o of_o who_o we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o and_o by_o the_o marquesse_n albert_n her_o husband_n she_o have_v alberick_n who_o afterward_o usurp_v the_o principality_n of_o rome_n
herein_o than_o the_o rest_n that_o oath_n which_o he_o make_v richard_n prince_n of_o capua_n to_o take_v 10._o gregor_n 7._o in_o epist_n post_fw-la 21._o &_o l._n 1._o &_o l._n 8._o post_n epist_n 10._o be_v very_o notable_a i_o richard_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o saint_n peter_n prince_n of_o capua_n by_o what_o divinity_n do_v he_o couple_v the_o creature_n and_o the_o creator_n together_o from_o this_o hour_n and_o ever_o hereafter_o will_v be_v faithful_a to_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o to_o thou_o a_o helper_n to_o hold_v obtain_v and_o defend_v the_o royalty_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o his_o possession_n with_o a_o true_a faith_n against_o all_o man_n and_o i_o will_v give_v my_o best_a assistance_n that_o thou_o may_v secure_o and_o honourable_o hold_v the_o popedom_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o dominion_n of_o s._n peter_n these_o clause_n according_a to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n go_v far_o and_o i_o will_v neither_o seek_v to_o invade_v or_o obtain_v thy_o principality_n nor_o presume_v to_o rob_v or_o waste_v they_o without_o the_o leave_n and_o licence_n of_o thou_o and_o thy_o successor_n that_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o s._n peter_n shall_v enter_v what_o other_o word_n can_v he_o use_v to_o a_o captain_n of_o thief_n but_o to_o king_n henry_n when_o i_o shall_v be_v admonish_v by_o thou_o or_o thy_o successor_n i_o will_v swear_v allegiance_n reserve_v still_o my_o fidelity_n to_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n these_o thing_n fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n 1073._o and_o the_o same_o oath_n take_v robert_n for_o apulia_n and_o calabria_n do_v his_o homage_n 71._o gregor_n l._n 2._o epist_n 71._o and_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o the_o year_n 1073_o there_o come_v to_o rome_n in_o pilgrimage_n the_o son_n of_o demetrius_n king_n of_o russia_n who_o he_o invest_v into_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o name_n of_o s._n peter_n undoubted_o affirm_v that_o this_o his_o petition_n shall_v be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o father_n if_o he_o shall_v possess_v his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n thus_o abuse_v as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o stile_n the_o sottish_a devotion_n of_o this_o young_a man_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o year_n 1081_o be_v the_o earl_n bernard_n besot_v who_o give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n the_o earldom_n of_o provence_n as_o for_o the_o donation_n of_o the_o countess_n mathilda_n we_o shall_v speak_v thereof_o in_o his_o due_a place_n but_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o consideration_n from_o what_o ground_n it_o shall_v arise_v that_o he_o write_v to_o philip_n k._n of_o france_n dare_v to_o promise_v he_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n if_o he_o will_v take_v part_n with_o he_o we_o will_v 1080._o an._n 1080._o say_v he_o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o command_v that_o thou_o hinder_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n that_o election_n which_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rheimes_n be_v to_o make_v whereby_o it_o may_v be_v think_v less_o canonical_a but_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v go_v about_o by_o any_o endeavour_n whatsoever_o to_o hinder_v it_o thou_o shall_v give_v thy_o best_a help_n to_o withstand_v he_o go_v forward_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v think_v in_o vain_a to_o have_v spare_v the_o sin_n of_o thy_o youth_n and_o to_o have_v expect_v thy_o amendment_n but_o especial_o endeavour_n to_o make_v s._n peter_n thy_o debtor_n that_o be_v hildebrand_n who_o make_v himself_o peter_n successor_n in_o who_o power_n be_v thy_o kingdom_n and_o thy_o soul_n who_o can_v bind_v and_o lose_v thou_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n by_o which_o thy_o diligence_n and_o execution_n of_o justice_n thou_o may_v deserve_v his_o eternal_a grace_n and_o favour_n here_o i_o may_v ask_v who_o discern_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o devil_n tempt_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o aphorism_n which_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n dictate_v publish_v by_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1076_o lay_v he_o open_v to_o the_o view_n of_o every_o man_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o from_o god_n why_o then_o allege_v they_o peter_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o be_v by_o right_n call_v universal_a and_o therefore_o he_o alone_o have_v right_a according_a to_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a to_o be_v either_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n or_o antichrist_n himself_o that_o he_o alone_o may_v depose_v and_o restore_v bishop_n what_o then_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o so_o many_o bishop_n that_o in_o the_o church_n for_o so_o many_o year_n and_o age_n in_o so_o many_o country_n have_v be_v lawful_o by_o good_a and_o worthy_a law_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o he_o nay_o in_o despite_n of_o he_o place_v and_o displace_v that_o his_o legate_n though_o otherwise_o inferior_a in_o degree_n must_v take_v place_n above_o all_o other_o bishop_n in_o counsel_n and_o may_v denounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n against_o they_o the_o reverend_a general_a counsel_n therefore_o in_o which_o diverse_a bishop_n have_v be_v precedent_n and_o take_v the_o upper_a place_n and_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o legate_n yea_o &_o many_o time_n against_o they_o too_o whither_o be_v they_o now_o go_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v such_o as_o be_v absent_a and_o this_o say_v baronius_n be_v to_o cut_v off_o occasion_n and_o excuse_n from_o our_o adversary_n yea_o the_o emperor_n himself_o who_o be_v absent_a he_o have_v excommunicate_v why_o then_o do_v they_o so_o much_o wonder_n that_o he_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o law_n against_o he_o that_o we_o must_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o house_n with_o such_o as_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v what_o be_v this_o but_o like_o the_o pagan_a high_a priest_n to_o interdict_v fire_n and_o water_n 37._o greg._n l._n 2._o epist_n 37._o but_o how_o happy_a be_v it_o for_o christendom_n that_o few_o believe_v it_o to_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o only_o according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n to_o make_v new_a law_n to_o ordain_v colony_n of_o a_o religious_a house_n to_o make_v a_o abbey_n and_o contrary_o to_o divide_v a_o rich_a bishopric_n and_o to_o unite_v the_o poor_a that_o he_o only_o may_v use_v the_o imperial_a ensign_n that_o all_o prince_n be_v to_o kiss_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o his_o name_n only_o be_v to_o be_v recite_v in_o church_n that_o no_o general_a synod_n be_v to_o be_v call_v without_o his_o command_n that_o no_o book_n may_v be_v account_v canonical_a without_o his_o authority_n that_o all_o cause_n of_o great_a importance_n of_o what_o church_n soever_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o he_o that_o he_o may_v absolve_v subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n towards_o their_o prince_n that_o he_o can_v judge_v of_o all_o man_n and_o no_o man_n can_v judge_v of_o he_o and_o all_o this_o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v never_o err_v nor_o as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v shall_v ever_o err_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o be_v canonical_o ordain_v be_v undoubted_o make_v holy_a by_o the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a name_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n he_o have_v almost_o say_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n a_o name_n above_o every_o name_n 12.4_o phil._n 2.9_o act_n 12.4_o the_o only_a name_n under_o heaven_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v now_o gentle_a reader_n what_o do_v thou_o expect_v but_o that_o over_o and_o above_o all_o this_o he_o shall_v add_v because_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n he_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o chief_a opposition_n we_o be_v to_o note_v some_o particular_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v contemn_v leo_fw-la the_o nine_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperg_n be_v at_o menze_n and_o the_o archbishop_n himself_o celebrate_v mass_n 1052._o an._n 1052._o it_o fall_v out_o that_o a_o certain_a deacon_n call_v hunibert_n read_v a_o lesson_n that_o make_v not_o for_o the_o pope_n leo_n be_v admonish_v hereof_o by_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n command_v he_o twice_o or_o thrice_o to_o be_v silent_a who_o nevertheless_o proceed_v the_o lesson_n be_v end_v he_o call_v he_o before_o he_o and_o present_o degrade_v he_o wherewith_o the_o archbishop_n be_v offend_v and_o much_o move_v protest_v that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o man_n else_o shall_v end_v the_o service_n at_o that_o time_n except_o his_o deacon_n be_v restore_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o same_o state_n he_o be_v in_o before_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o pope_n to_o satisfy_v
decree_n they_o degrade_v he_o and_o put_v his_o son_n into_o his_o place_n the_o circumstance_n be_v set_v down_o by_o krantzius_n and_o helmoldus_n saxon._n helmold_n l._n 1._o cap._n 32._o krantzius_n l._n 5._o ca._n 20._o in_o saxon._n which_o let_v not_o the_o reader_n think_v tedious_a to_o read_v the_o bishop_n say_v he_o of_o mence_n cologne_n and_o worm_n be_v command_v to_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o bring_v from_o he_o howsoever_o unwilling_a the_o imperial_a ensign_n the_o cross_n sceptre_n halberd_n kingdom_n sword_n and_o crown_n but_o the_o emperor_n inquire_v the_o cause_n thereof_o they_o answer_v he_o that_o he_o commit_v simony_n in_o confer_v of_o bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n reply_v tell_v i_o you_o bishop_n of_o mence_n and_o cologne_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n what_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o you_o they_o answer_v nothing_o glory_n to_o god_n on_o high_a say_v the_o emperor_n that_o in_o this_o point_n we_o be_v find_v faithful_a doubtless_o your_o great_a dignity_n may_v have_v bring_v great_a gain_n into_o our_o chamber_n if_o we_o have_v seek_v after_o it_o my_o lord_n of_o worm_n know_v &_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a whether_o free_o or_o for_o gain_v we_o receive_v he_o my_o good_a father_n violate_v not_o your_o faith_n we_o now_o wax_v old_a have_v patience_n a_o little_a and_o end_v not_o our_o glory_n with_o confusion_n we_o require_v a_o general_a court_n if_o we_o must_v yield_v we_o will_v deliver_v our_o crown_n to_o our_o son_n with_o our_o own_o hand_n but_o they_o make_v offer_n to_o enforce_v he_o he_o retire_v himself_o a_o little_a and_o put_v on_o his_o imperial_a ensign_n and_o return_v unto_o they_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n say_v he_o &_o the_o election_n of_o the_o prince_n give_v they_o unto_o i_o god_n be_v able_a to_o preserve_v they_o unto_o i_o and_o to_o withhold_v your_o hand_n from_o this_o your_o enterprise_n although_o we_o want_v our_o force_n to_o defend_v we_o not_o doubt_v of_o any_o such_o violence_n but_o yet_o let_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n bridle_v you_o since_o piety_n can_v and_o if_o neither_o of_o they_o will_v behold_v here_o be_o i_o unable_a to_o withstand_v your_o force_n hereupon_o the_o bishop_n pause_v a_o while_n but_o at_o the_o last_o the_o one_o encourage_v the_o other_o they_o go_v to_o the_o emperor_n take_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o head_n and_o take_v he_o out_o of_o his_o seat_n spoil_v he_o of_o all_o his_o royal_a robe_n the_o emperor_n fetch_v a_o deep_a sigh_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o god_n of_o vengeance_n behold_v and_o revenge_v this_o iniquity_n you_o commit_v against_o i_o i_o suffer_v a_o ignominy_n the_o like_a whereof_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o but_o it_o be_v god_n the_o just_a judge_n that_o punish_v i_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n but_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o free_a from_o this_o offence_n because_o you_o have_v break_v your_o oath_n and_o therefore_o you_o shall_v not_o avoid_v the_o revenge_n of_o a_o just_a judge_n god_n never_o prosper_v you_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o let_v your_o portion_n be_v with_o he_o that_o betray_v christ_n this_o say_v krantzius_n be_v the_o narration_n of_o our_o annal_n and_o sigonius_n describe_v this_o matter_n almost_o in_o the_o same_o word_n italia_n sigon_n l._n 9_o de_fw-la regno_fw-la italia_n by_o which_o narration_n it_o plain_o appear_v that_o this_o poor_a emperor_n be_v not_o depose_v because_o he_o have_v invest_v bishop_n for_o money_n which_o they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n acknowledge_v but_o pure_o and_o simple_o because_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o his_o predecessor_n he_o do_v invest_v they_o which_o the_o synod_n call_v the_o henrician_n heresy_n or_o of_o guibert_n alias_o clement_n 3_o the_o guibertine_n by_o which_o account_n all_o prince_n be_v in_o those_o day_n heretic_n but_o so_o farforth_o do_v the_o cruelty_n of_o paschal_n extend_v 68_o krantz_n saxon._n l._n 5._o cap._n 21._o henric._n herford_n cap._n 68_o that_o he_o cause_v all_o that_o be_v invest_v by_o henry_n to_o be_v dig_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n six_o year_n after_o their_o death_n but_o he_o demand_v penance_n of_o the_o legate_n be_v proud_o reject_v until_o he_o do_v humble_o submit_v himself_o to_o paschal_n but_o paschal_n every_o thing_n thus_o fall_v out_o according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n by_o a_o honourable_a embassage_n be_v entreat_v to_o come_v into_o germany_n while_o the_o emperor_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v leave_v to_o lead_v a_o private_a life_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o ingelheim_n but_o yet_o short_o after_o by_o the_o help_n of_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n he_o retire_v himself_o into_o cologne_n and_o be_v conduct_v by_o the_o citizen_n to_o liege_n he_o be_v honourable_o receyve_v by_o othbert_n bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o henry_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o dispatch_v orator_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n especial_o philip_n the_o first_o king_n of_o france_n to_o lay_v open_a unto_o they_o this_o miserable_a tragedy_n but_o his_o son_n pursue_v he_o even_o to_o that_o place_n notwithstanding_o those_o protestation_n he_o make_v that_o he_o only_o fight_v some_o little_a place_n of_o rest_n where_o he_o may_v end_v his_o life_n and_o at_o the_o last_o by_o his_o endeavour_n he_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o he_o get_v he_o again_o by_o force_n into_o his_o power_n where_o his_o estate_n be_v such_o at_o the_o last_o that_o he_o entreat_v the_o bishop_n of_o spire_n sometime_o his_o dear_a friend_n and_o advance_v by_o he_o to_o give_v he_o a_o place_n where_o he_o may_v live_v as_o a_o clerk_n in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n mary_n which_o he_o have_v found_v which_o be_v cruel_o deny_v he_o and_o so_o a_o few_o day_n after_o be_v overcome_v with_o grief_n he_o die_v and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o impiety_n of_o his_o son_n have_v not_o altogether_o extinguish_v his_o love_n and_o piety_n towards_o he_o he_o send_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o last_o present_n &_o testimony_n of_o his_o fatherlie_a love_n his_o seale-ring_n and_o his_o sword_n who_o nevertheless_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n 33._o auent_n l._n 5._o annalium_fw-la boior_fw-la helmold_n l._n 1._o cap._n 33._o and_o to_o express_v his_o obedience_n towards_o he_o keep_v his_o father_n for_o five_o year_n together_o unbury_v in_o a_o solitary_a chapel_n of_o the_o house_n here_o say_v helmoldus_n the_o historiographer_n he_o be_v very_o good_a to_o those_o church_n which_o he_o find_v to_o be_v faithful_a unto_o he_o but_o as_o for_o gregory_n and_o other_o who_o lie_v in_o ambush_n against_o his_o honour_n as_o they_o endeavour_v the_o worst_a they_o can_v against_o he_o so_o he_o the_o like_a against_o they_o extreme_a necessity_n as_o many_o affirm_v enforce_v he_o thereunto_o for_o who_o will_v willing_o endure_v the_o least_o loss_n of_o honour_n we_o read_v of_o many_o that_o have_v sin_v who_o have_v be_v relieve_v by_o repentance_n david_n sin_v and_o repent_v continue_v a_o king_n and_o a_o prophet_n but_o king_n henry_n cast_v himself_o down_o at_o the_o pope_n foot_n pray_v and_o repent_v be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o can_v not_o obtain_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n that_o david_n obtain_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o let_v those_o dispute_v hereof_o that_o dare_v or_o know_v these_o thing_n this_o only_a one_o thing_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n rue_v that_o fact_n for_o as_o many_o as_o since_o that_o time_n have_v reign_v of_o that_o stock_n have_v use_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o humble_a the_o church_n lest_o they_o shall_v gather_v strength_n against_o king_n and_o attempt_v as_o much_o against_o they_o as_o they_o have_v do_v against_o their_o forefather_n but_o henry_n the_o junior_a reign_v for_o his_o father_n and_o there_o be_v peace_n between_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n but_o yet_o not_o long_o for_o neither_o do_v he_o prosper_v be_v all_o his_o life_n time_n ensnare_v as_o his_o father_n be_v by_o the_o apostolic_a see_n and_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n that_o here_o speak_v this_o henry_n according_a to_o most_o writer_n be_v call_v the_o four_o we_o follow_v onuphrius_n and_o sigonius_n make_v he_o the_o three_o all_o this_o happen_v from_o the_o year_n 1099_o to_o 1106._o 1106._o an._n 1106._o but_o let_v we_o not_o forget_v a_o epistle_n of_o this_o paschal_n write_v to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o polonia_n at_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o age_n 1102._o an._n 1102._o about_o the_o allegation_n of_o counsel_n poloniae_fw-la pascha_fw-la l._n epist_n ad_fw-la archiep._n poloniae_fw-la as_o if_o say_v he_o any_o counsel_n may_v
of_o this_o investiture_n he_o have_v make_v himself_o the_o door_n beneventi_fw-la epist_n paschalis_n ad_fw-la henric._n regem_fw-la anglorum_fw-la data_fw-la beneventi_fw-la that_o they_o who_o enter_v not_o by_o he_o forsake_v god_n who_o be_v the_o true_a door_n and_o be_v thief_n and_o robber_n apply_v that_o unto_o himself_o which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v to_o no_o other_o put_v himself_o thereby_o into_o his_o place_n this_o say_v he_o be_v to_o handle_v the_o church_n as_o a_o handmaid_n not_o as_o a_o spouse_n this_o repugn_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n and_o yet_o be_v there_o ever_o word_n speak_v hereof_o by_o which_o allegation_n nevertheless_o he_o abuse_v the_o ignorant_a and_o simple_a people_n 45._o progression_n of_o the_o strange_a pride_n of_o calixtus_n the_o second_o and_o of_o his_o barbarous_a cruelty_n towards_o gregory_n the_o eight_o of_o the_o degrade_n of_o marry_a priest_n and_o of_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o cardinal_n john_n of_o creme_a the_o pope_n legate_n come_v into_o england_n to_o put_v down_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n iohn_n of_o gaieta_n succeed_v paschal_n call_v galasius_n the_o second_o be_v create_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o henry_n who_o remain_v at_o pavia_n but_o understand_v hereof_o go_v direct_o to_o rome_n wherewith_o galasius_n be_v amaze_v flee_v by_o sea_n to_o tarrachina_fw-la and_o there_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o faction_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o henry_n cause_v mauritius_n burdinus_n to_o be_v consecrate_v at_o rome_n who_o crown_v he_o the_o second_o time_n and_o be_v call_v gregory_n the_o eight_o whereupon_o galasius_n excommunicate_v they_o both_o be_v uphold_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o apulia_n he_o restore_v to_o gualterus_n archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n the_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o aemilia_n who_o his_o predecessor_n have_v take_v away_o that_o he_o may_v draw_v he_o away_o from_o the_o emperor_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o find_v no_o safety_n in_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o frangepane_n be_v resolve_v to_o leave_v there_o the_o bishop_n of_o port_n 1119._o an._n 1119._o and_o to_o go_v into_o france_n where_o in_o the_o year_n 1119_o he_o hold_v a_o council_n at_o vienna_n but_o die_v soon_o after_o at_o clugni_n in_o who_o place_n the_o cardinal_n that_o be_v there_o present_a with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o clerk_n and_o laity_n of_o rome_n choose_v guido_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n the_o brother_n of_o stephen_n duke_n of_o burgundy_n uncle_n to_o baldwin_n earl_n of_o flanders_n and_o a_o near_a kinsman_n of_o henry_n who_o be_v call_v calixtus_n the_o second_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v doubt_v whether_o their_o great_a affinity_n can_v support_v he_o in_o the_o popedom_n decet_fw-la d._n 12._o c._n non_fw-la decet_fw-la which_o otherwise_o will_v be_v very_o feeble_a and_o subject_a to_o ruin_v but_o let_v the_o reader_n note_n touch_v their_o pretend_a succession_n what_o this_o election_n may_v be_v without_o rome_n in_o a_o monastery_n make_v by_o the_o follower_n and_o train_n of_o a_o pope_n new_o dead_a and_o a_o few_o other_o although_o the_o roman_n afterward_o give_v their_o consent_n thereunto_o have_v say_v aventine_n 6._o auent_n l._n 6._o corrupt_v the_o roman_n with_o money_n he_o bestow_v upon_o they_o which_o he_o have_v borrow_v and_o beg_v of_o his_o friend_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n cunon_o bishop_n of_o prene_a the_o legate_n of_o galasius_n continue_v his_o practice_n in_o germany_n withdraw_v under_o the_o shadow_n of_o excommunication_n the_o prince_n from_o the_o service_n of_o henry_n and_o to_o this_o end_n hold_v diverse_a counsel_n at_o cologne_n fritzlare_n and_o elsewhere_o always_o under_o a_o pretence_n to_o reconcile_v the_o kingdom_n with_o the_o priesthood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o draw_v to_o the_o popedom_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o that_o in_o the_o end_n in_o a_o council_n at_o worm_n in_o the_o year_n 1122_o 1122._o an._n 1122._o the_o emperor_n weary_v with_o so_o many_o molestation_n and_o see_v no_o other_o end_n but_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o state_n grant_v to_o calixtus_n whatsoever_o he_o will_v the_o form_n of_o who_o agreement_n write_v by_o vrsperge_n be_v as_o follow_v i_o henry_n 10._o abbas_n vispergens●in_n chron._n krantz_n saxon._n l._n 6._o c._n 41.42.43_o sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la italiae_fw-la l._n 10._o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n emperor_n augustus_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o our_o lord_n pope_n calixtus_n and_o for_o the_o sovereign_a good_a of_o my_o soul_n i_o leave_v to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o holy_a apostle_n saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n all_o investiture_n by_o the_o ring_n and_o the_o staff_n and_o i_o grant_v election_n and_o consecration_n to_o be_v make_v in_o all_o church_n see_v here_o for_o what_o gospel_n these_o pope_n do_v strive_v calixtus_n in_o like_a sort_n i_o calixtus_n etc._n etc._n grant_v that_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o germany_n be_v do_v in_o thy_o presence_n without_o simony_n and_o violence_n etc._n etc._n but_o let_v he_o that_o be_v choose_v receive_v his_o investiture_n of_o thou_o by_o the_o sceptre_n except_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v know_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o do_v all_o thing_n which_o by_o right_n belong_v unto_o thou_o but_o in_o token_n of_o this_o insolence_n the_o legate_n of_o calixtus_n will_v that_o these_o letter_n shall_v be_v publish_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n in_o the_o open_a field_n near_o the_o rhine_n where_o be_v assemble_v people_n from_o all_o part_n but_o calixtus_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o he_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v hang_v in_o the_o church_n of_o lateran_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n may_v behold_v they_o but_o otho_n of_o frisingen_n say_v 16._o otho_n frise_v l._n 7._o c._n 16._o that_o the_o roman_n boast_v that_o this_o agreement_n be_v but_o only_o for_o henry_n and_o not_o for_o his_o successor_n by_o which_o covenant_n say_v he_o the_o church_n under_o calixtus_n the_o second_o in_o magnum_fw-la montem_fw-la crevisse_fw-la increase_v to_o a_o great_a height_n whereupon_o this_o be_v write_v of_o he_o at_o rome_n ecce_fw-la calixtus_n honour_n patriae_fw-la decus_fw-la imperiale_n burdinum_fw-la nequam_fw-la damnat_fw-la pacemque_fw-la reformat_fw-la behold_v calixt_v our_o country_n honour_n worth_a imperial_a that_o wicked_a burdine_n punish_v and_o peace_n reform_v with_o all_o neither_o do_v his_o affair_n less_o succeed_v at_o rome_n for_o gregory_n the_o antipope_n under_o the_o favour_n of_o certain_a earl_n be_v maintain_v at_o sutri_n but_o calixtus_n return_v out_o of_o france_n to_o win_v his_o favour_n they_o deliver_v he_o into_o his_o hand_n and_o here_o the_o notable_a insolency_n of_o calixtus_n be_v recite_v by_o the_o abbot_n suggerus_n crassi_n abbas_n suggerus_n in_o vita_fw-la ludovici_fw-la crassi_n in_o the_o life_n of_o lewis_n the_o gross_a they_o put_v say_v he_o this_o antipope_n or_o rather_o antichrist_n overthwart_v the_o back_n of_o a_o ill_a favour_a camel_n clothe_v with_o raw_a and_o bloody_a goat_n skin_n and_o the_o better_a to_o revenge_v the_o ignominy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n they_o carry_v he_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o city_n calixtus_n condemn_v he_o to_o perpetual_a prison_n in_o the_o mountain_n of_o campania_n and_o to_o preserve_v the_o memory_n of_o so_o great_a a_o revenge_n they_o paint_v he_o in_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o palace_n tread_v under_o the_o foot_n of_o calixtus_n this_o gregory_n nevertheless_o hold_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n three_o year_n 1._o d._n 12._o c._n 1._o but_o no_o fault_n be_v impute_v to_o they_o when_o calixtus_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o write_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a in_o the_o least_o point_n to_o wander_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a for_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n so_o fulfil_v you_o the_o will_n of_o your_o mother_n who_o head_n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o reader_n may_v note_v in_o this_o comparison_n not_o so_o much_o the_o absurdity_n as_o the_o blasphemy_n when_o nevertheless_o this_o canon_n do_v still_o continue_v reform_v in_o a_o decree_n by_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o and_o strengthen_v by_o a_o lie_n for_o whereas_o the_o old_a decree_n say_v simple_o calixtus_n papa_n omnibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la that_o he_o may_v make_v this_o gregorian_a canon_n more_o ancient_a by_o a_o thousand_o year_n say_v calixtus_n papa_n primus_fw-la and_o add_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n
the_o rod_n of_o a_o pastor_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v what_o will_v you_o shall_v i_o come_v unto_o you_o with_o the_o rod_n or_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o what_o say_v i_o she_o have_v a_o rod_n yea_o she_o have_v a_o sword_n also_o according_a to_o the_o same_o take_v unto_o you_o the_o helmet_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o against_o some_o which_o have_v trouble_v he_o he_o will_v not_o have_v refuse_v the_o help_n of_o another_o sword_n i_o let_v pass_v the_o satyr_n of_o bernard_n a_o monk_n of_o clugni_n under_o this_o peter_n his_o venerable_a abbot_n wherein_o he_o wonderful_o discipher_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n not_o to_o weary_v the_o reader_n i_o will_v quote_v only_o some_o few_o verse_n to_o this_o purpose_n although_o the_o rest_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n o_o mala_fw-la secula_fw-la venditur_fw-la insula_fw-la pontificalis_fw-la infula_fw-la venditur_fw-la haud_fw-la reprehenditur_fw-la emptio_fw-la talis_fw-la venditur_fw-la annulus_fw-la hinc_fw-la lucra_fw-la romulus_n auget_fw-la &_o urget_fw-la est_fw-la modò_fw-la mortua_fw-la roma_fw-la superflua_fw-la quando_fw-la resurget_fw-la si_fw-mi tibi_fw-la det_fw-la sva_fw-la non_fw-la replete_a tua_fw-la guttura_fw-la croesus_n marca_n vel_fw-la aureus_fw-la à_fw-la modo_fw-la non_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la tibi_fw-la jesus_n o_o wicked_a time_n wherein_o the_o crown_n and_o see_v be_v sell_v and_o yet_o the_o merchandise_n thereof_o be_v uncontrolled_a the_o ring_n be_v also_o sell_v but_o romulus_n do_v gain_v superfluous_a rome_n now_o die_v when_o shall_v it_o rise_v again_o not_o croesus_n can_v suffice_v if_o rome_n shall_v give_v he_o his_o nor_o any_o gold_n for_o now_o no_o god_n or_o christ_n there_o be_v also_o peter_n deacon_n continuer_n of_o the_o chronicle_n of_o mont_n cassin_n show_v 117._o chron._n cassinens_fw-la petri_n diac._n l._n 4._o c._n 116._o &_o 117._o that_o when_o the_o emperor_n of_o greece_n have_v send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o lotharius_n when_o he_o assist_v innocent_a in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o monk_n of_o mont_n cassin_n there_o be_v among_o other_o a_o greek_a philosopher_n who_o dispute_v against_o he_o peter_n deacon_n that_o pope_n innocent_n be_v excommunicate_v his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o the_o western_a climate_n we_o see_v that_o prophesy_v fulfil_v as_o the_o people_n be_v so_o shall_v the_o priest_n he_o while_o bishop_n go_v out_o to_o war_n as_o your_o pope_n innocent_a do_v he_o distribute_v money_n pre_v soldier_n for_o the_o war_n and_o be_v clothe_v in_o purple_a no_o doubt_n but_o he_o allege_v other_o reason_n which_o he_o tell_v not_o but_o beside_o they_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o have_v hear_v thunder_n it_o out_o so_o loud_a against_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o action_n there_o be_v find_v some_o in_o these_o time_n which_o open_o fall_v away_o from_o it_o assail_a their_o doctrine_n itself_o and_o in_o our_o france_n by_o their_o preach_n draw_v many_o province_n from_o it_o and_o from_o thence_o as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v see_v spread_v themselves_o into_o neighbour_n nation_n these_o be_v peter_n bruis_n in_o the_o year_n 1126_o and_o after_o he_o his_o disciple_n henry_n about_o the_o year_n 1147_o the_o first_o be_v a_o priest_n and_o the_o other_o a_o monk_n who_o first_o in_o the_o diocese_n of_o arles_n of_o ambrum_fw-la and_o of_o gap_n then_o after_o throughout_o all_o awergne_n languedoc_n and_o guienne_n preach_v against_o transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n mass_n suffrage_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n worship_v of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n single_a life_n of_o priest_n pilgrimage_n superfluous_a holiday_n consecration_n of_o water_n oil_n frankincense_n and_o other_o romish_a trash_n but_o especial_o they_o invey_v against_o the_o pride_n and_o excess_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o his_o prelate_n who_o they_o call_v prince_n of_o sodom_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o term_v babylon_n the_o mother_n of_o fornication_n and_o confusion_n which_o we_o learn_v from_o that_o venerable_a peter_n 2._o petrus_n abbas_n cluniacen_n l._n 1._o epist_n 1._o &_o 2._o abbot_n of_o clugni_n in_o some_o of_o his_o epistle_n where_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o confute_v they_o and_o it_o be_v great_a pity_n that_o their_o book_n be_v with_o so_o great_a diligence_n abolish_v that_o we_o be_v constrain_v to_o use_v the_o writing_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o to_o pick_v out_o their_o doctrine_n who_o testimony_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o hatred_n and_o calumny_n may_v just_o be_v suspect_v for_o it_o be_v impute_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o believe_v only_o the_o four_o evangelist_n and_o reject_v all_o the_o other_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o here_o peter_n true_o skirmish_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n see_v that_o they_o very_o affirm_v follow_v the_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o rule_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v only_o out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o abbot_n himself_o seem_v to_o have_v perceive_v that_o he_o have_v do_v they_o injury_n when_o he_o say_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o the_o like_a but_o because_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o full_o assure_v that_o they_o think_v and_o preach_v so_o i_o will_v defer_v my_o answer_n until_o i_o have_v undoubted_a certainty_n of_o that_o they_o say_v also_o i_o ought_v not_o easy_o give_v assent_n to_o that_o deceive_a monster_n rumour_n or_o common_a report_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v not_o blame_v you_o of_o thing_n uncertain_a so_o saint_n bernard_n more_o credulous_a than_o reason_n require_v reprove_v they_o that_o like_o the_o manichee_n they_o condemn_v the_o use_n of_o matrimony_n and_o of_o flesh_n and_o deny_v also_o baptism_n to_o infant_n but_o especial_o against_o henry_n he_o object_v the_o keep_n of_o a_o concubine_n and_o play_v at_o dice._n in_o like_a manner_n we_o read_v in_o tertullian_n that_o monstrous_a opinion_n and_o crime_n be_v impute_v to_o the_o first_o christian_n 66._o bernard_n in_o cantic_a serm_n 66._o yet_o bernard_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n say_v they_o be_v sheep_n in_o habit_n fox_n in_o craft_n wolf_n in_o cruelty_n these_o be_v they_o that_o will_v seem_v good_a and_o yet_o be_v not_o wicked_a and_o yet_o will_v not_o seem_v so_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o that_o their_o outward_a conversation_n be_v good_a it_o be_v also_o confess_v that_o their_o disciple_n go_v cheerful_o to_o the_o fire_n and_o constant_o suffer_v all_o extremity_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o faith_n can_v that_o agree_v with_o a_o dissolute_a life_n &_o doctrine_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n follow_v with_o such_o a_o multitude_n 5._o epist_n 240._o &_o 241._o &_o in_o vita_fw-la bernard_n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o that_o the_o temple_n say_v bernard_n remain_v without_o people_n the_o people_n without_o priest_n priest_n without_o their_o due_a reverence_n &_o christian_n without_o christ_n the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o romish_a be_v repute_v synagogue_n the_o argument_n bring_v against_o they_o be_v as_o in_o these_o day_n have_v our_o father_n then_o so_o long_o a_o time_n err_v be_v so_o many_o man_n deceive_v yet_o be_v they_o defend_v by_o notable_a person_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n and_o by_o some_o also_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o noble_n of_o the_o realm_n namely_o by_o hildefonsus_n earl_n of_o s._n giles_n under_o who_o protection_n they_o preach_v in_o his_o country_n the_o people_n of_o tholouse_n also_o where_o peter_n preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o space_n of_o twenty_o year_n with_o great_a commendation_n and_o in_o the_o end_n be_v burn_v henry_n also_o his_o disciple_n some_o few_o year_n after_o be_v betray_v to_o albericus_n cardinal_n of_o ostia_n be_v carry_v bind_v to_o in_o chain_n into_o italy_n and_o never_o afterward_o see_v notwithstanding_o the_o persecution_n be_v hot_a all_o that_o time_n against_o the_o poor_a people_n without_o any_o difference_n of_o age_n or_o sex_n now_o as_o we_o have_v note_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n ever_o accompany_v the_o iniquity_n of_o this_o mystery_n there_o arise_v in_o this_o time_n peter_n abayllard_n a_o man_n of_o most_o subtle_a wit_n who_o bring_v in_o again_o the_o opinion_n of_o pelagius_n and_o other_o follow_v who_o destroy_v as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v the_o free_a justification_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v the_o christian_a church_n by_o the_o throat_n against_o who_o saint_n benard_n write_v diverse_a treatise_n and_o maintain_v the_o aunceint_a truth_n teach_v by_o s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n prosper_n and_o fulgentius_n in_o the_o church_n sweep_v
measure_n inforce_v he_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n to_o forsake_v rome_n and_o to_o hold_v his_o see_v at_o velitre_n who_o nevertheless_o provide_v himself_o against_o they_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o a_o sarasen_a war_n call_v a_o council_n at_o verona_n in_o the_o year_n 1184_o where_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n himself_o be_v present_a 40._o an._n 1184._o naucler_n vol._n 2._o gener._n 40._o frederick_n make_v benefit_n of_o the_o time_n have_v now_o pacify_v lombardie_n and_o receive_v alexandria_n into_o favour_n touch_v which_o city_n there_o have_v grow_v so_o great_a contention_n between_o he_o and_o alexander_n seem_v to_o reduce_v thing_n to_o their_o pristinat_a state_n jtal._n sigon_n l._n 14._o de_fw-la regno_fw-la jtal._n as_o appeareth_z by_o these_o article_n that_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n depart_v the_o city_n and_o so_o long_o shall_v abide_v from_o thence_o till_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o his_o deputy_n or_o lieutenant_n in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n that_o by_o this_o act_n it_o may_v appear_v he_o give_v and_o they_o receive_v their_o country_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o so_o the_o city_n shall_v from_o hence_o forward_o be_v call_v caesaria_n in_o this_o council_n lucius_n the_o three_o so_o far_o prevail_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o emperor_n presence_n to_o repress_v the_o roman_n that_o they_o be_v proclaim_v as_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n as_o frederick_n request_v to_o crown_v his_o son_n henry_n emperor_n he_o express_o deny_v it_o unless_o he_o will_v restore_v first_o unto_o he_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o countess_n mathilda_n and_o other_o duty_n which_o he_o withhold_v from_o the_o church_n thereby_o not_o so_o much_o renew_v a_o old_a quarrel_n as_o determine_v it_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n it_o be_v also_o request_v by_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v into_o favour_n those_o ecclesiastical_a person_n that_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o antipope_n whereunto_o he_o consent_v but_o the_o day_n follow_v when_o he_o shall_v have_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o they_o utter_o refuse_v it_o and_o refer_v it_o to_o another_o synod_n fearing_n say_v krantzius_n lest_o the_o church_n 47._o krantzius_n l._n 6._o saxon._n c._n 47._o as_o in_o former_a time_n shall_v fall_v into_o a_o most_o dangerous_a schism_n which_o evil_a the_o near_o they_o know_v it_o the_o more_o they_o fear_v it_o even_o so_o both_o with_o grudge_n and_o discontent_a mind_n dismiss_v the_o council_n and_o now_o frederick_n pass_v forward_o into_o italy_n strait_o pursue_v the_o city_n that_o hold_v with_o the_o church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n lucius_n be_v resolve_v to_o use_v all_o extremity_n even_o when_o he_o die_v in_o the_o city_n of_o verona_n have_v never_o dare_v to_o look_v back_o towards_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v choose_v for_o his_o successor_n lambert_n archbishop_n of_o milan_n who_o be_v name_v vrban_n the_o three_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o this_o lucius_n excommunicate_v the_o waldense_n and_o albienses_n because_o they_o do_v wear_v sandal_n on_o their_o foot_n and_o a_o hood_n say_v they_o do_v therein_o imitat_fw-la the_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n it_o be_v rather_o through_o malice_n let_v it_o suffice_v we_o that_o he_o have_v no_o great_a crime_n to_o charge_v they_o withal_o there_o be_v also_o extant_a another_o decree_n of_o he_o 52._o abbas_n visperg_n in_o chron._n extra_fw-la de_fw-la judicijs_fw-la tit._n 1._o c._n clerici_fw-la 8._o abbas_n vrsperg_n exit_fw-la epistola_fw-la quadam_fw-la pragens_n univer_n ad_fw-la oxoniensem_fw-la tempore_fw-la wenceslei_fw-la jmperatoris_fw-la scripta_fw-la sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la jtal._n l._n 15._o ex_fw-la naubrig_n vrsprergen_n &_o viterbiens_fw-la krantxius_n in_o saxon._n l._n 6._o c._n 52._o that_o a_o clergy_n man_n for_o every_o crime_n shall_v be_v convent_v before_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n notwithstanding_o any_o other_o custom_n whatsoever_o here_o be_v also_o of_o he_o a_o certain_a epigram_n which_o be_v allude_v to_o the_o fish_n call_v a_o pike_n be_v in_o latin_a lucius_n who_o devour_v other_o fish_n lucius_n est_fw-la piscis_fw-la rex_fw-la atque_fw-la tyrannus_fw-la aquarum_fw-la aquo_fw-la discordat_fw-la lucius_n iste_fw-la parum_fw-la devorat_fw-la ille_fw-la homines_fw-la hic_fw-la piscibus_fw-la insidiatur_fw-la esurit_fw-la hic_fw-la semper_fw-la hic_fw-la aliquando_fw-la satur_fw-la amborum_fw-la vitam_fw-la si_fw-la laus_fw-la aquata_fw-la notaret_fw-la plus_fw-fr rationis_fw-la habet_fw-la qui_fw-la ratione_fw-la caret_fw-la lucius_n be_v a_o fish_n a_o tyrant_n in_o water_n like_a to_o this_o lucius_n as_o mother_n to_o daughter_n he_o devour_v man_n this_o fish_n do_v eat_v he_o still_o hunger_n this_o sometime_n full_a with_o meat_n if_o both_o their_o life_n we_o equal_o shall_v praise_v he_o have_v most_o reason_n that_o reason_n denaye_v in_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o history_n of_o these_o time_n we_o must_v follow_v the_o self_n same_o step_n vrbanus_n although_o he_o continue_v not_o long_o notwithstanding_o in_o that_o little_a time_n purchase_v the_o name_n of_o turbanus_n through_o the_o trouble_n which_o he_o everywhere_a procure_v frederick_n make_v peace_n with_o william_n king_n of_o sicilia_n and_o for_o the_o better_a confirmation_n thereof_o marry_v his_o son_n henry_n to_o constance_n the_o daughter_n of_o roger_n the_o grandfather_n of_o the_o say_v william_n who_o die_v without_o issue_n be_v the_o next_o heir_n this_o manage_n please_v not_o vrban_n and_o the_o less_o because_o frederick_n in_o a_o assembly_n hold_v at_o geilhausen_n cause_v the_o prelate_n of_o germany_n to_o write_v unto_o he_o to_o preserve_v the_o tenthes_o hold_v in_o fee_n and_o other_o right_n to_o the_o nobility_n be_v by_o she_o worthy_o obtain_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o he_o prepare_v at_o verona_n to_o excommunicate_a he_o they_o of_o verona_n to_o who_o he_o be_v now_o retire_v make_v know_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o in_o their_o city_n such_o a_o decree_n shall_v be_v publish_v against_o the_o emperor_n whereupon_o he_o depart_v to_o ferrara_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v prevent_v by_o death_n the_o abbot_n of_o vrsperg_n of_o he_o thus_o brief_o speak_v be_v bear_v in_o milan_n in_o hatred_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o be_v very_o trouble_v some_o to_o the_o church_n which_o have_v a_o while_n be_v quiet_a but_o he_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o die_v have_v continue_v in_o the_o seat_n but_o one_o year_n ten_o month_n and_o fifteen_o day_n 1187._o an._n 1187._o in_o the_o year_n 1187_o the_o cardinal_n albert_n his_o chancellor_n choose_v by_o the_o cardinal_n at_o ferrara_n succeed_v he_o be_v call_v gregory_n the_o eight_o who_o soon_o after_o write_v to_o all_o prince_n to_o persuade_v they_o to_o go_v personal_o into_o palestina_n to_o recover_v jerusalem_n which_o the_o infidel_n have_v forcible_o get_v from_o the_o christian_n assure_o promise_v they_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o church_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o absence_n for_o the_o safety_n both_o of_o their_o state_n &_o good_n and_o doubtless_o the_o miserable_a estate_n there_o of_o the_o christian_n persuade_v many_o to_o undertake_v this_o journey_n as_o the_o emperor_n frederic_n philip_n king_n of_o france_n and_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n and_o diverse_a other_o prince_n in_o their_o own_o person_n notwithstanding_o gregory_n see_v not_o the_o success_n thereof_o death_n prevent_v he_o in_o pisa_n even_o at_o the_o set_n forward_o of_o this_o enterprise_n but_o the_o cardinal_n that_o be_v of_o his_o train_n choose_v in_o the_o same_o place_n cardinal_n paul_n a_o scholar_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v clement_n the_o three_o be_v so_o name_v because_o the_o dissension_n that_o have_v continue_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o roman_n the_o space_n of_o five_o and_o forty_o year_n be_v extinguish_v and_o appease_v by_o his_o mean_n upon_o condition_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o patricius_n but_o the_o senator_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o city_n create_v by_o they_o before_o they_o enter_v into_o that_o office_n shall_v be_v invest_v permantum_fw-la with_o a_o mantle_n by_o the_o pope_n now_o frederic_n die_v in_o this_o voyage_n after_o many_o notable_a &_o worthy_a exploit_n 1190._o an._n 1190._o in_o the_o year_n 1190_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o certain_a river_n in_o armenia_n call_v serra_n to_o refresh_v himself_o in_o the_o violent_a heat_n of_o summer_n the_o sudden_a cold_a to_o the_o extreme_a heat_n strike_v inward_o into_o he_o present_o overcome_v his_o vital_a part_n 15._o otho_n de_fw-fr s._n blasio_n cap._n 35._o abbas_n vrspergen_v sigon_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la jtal._n l._n 15._o a_o prince_n
ruinate_v frederick_n not_o forbear_v to_o say_v that_o the_o empire_n of_o germany_n flourish_v more_o than_o be_v for_o his_o profit_n but_o say_v aventine_n that_o can_v not_o well_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v these_o because_o they_o be_v then_o yet_o universal_o give_v to_o the_o love_n of_o art_n boiorum_n auent_n l._n 7._o annal._n boiorum_n and_o of_o the_o common_a good_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o servitude_n not_o as_o now_o shun_v labour_n and_o give_v to_o sloth_n idleness_n and_o pleasure_n they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o wisdom_n in_o study_n on_o book_n in_o love_a christ_n and_o diligent_a feed_v their_o sheep_n they_o take_v care_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o provide_v for_o christian_a preach_v the_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n of_o these_o man_n be_v first_o confer_v upon_o they_o by_o our_o emperor_n and_o prince_n then_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o five_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n be_v assemble_v and_o suffrage_n by_o each_o man_n particular_o give_v they_o be_v choose_v with_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n and_o all_o the_o priest_n the_o common_a pastor_n of_o soul_n and_o at_o length_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o frederick_n the_o second_o by_o the_o clergy_n alone_o the_o people_n exclude_v for_o which_o cause_v the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n in_o their_o title_n beginning_n of_o epistle_n and_o decree_n do_v not_o write_v apostolicae_fw-la sedis_fw-la gratia_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o man_n as_o now_o they_o do_v but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o s._n paul_n sola_o miseratione_n divina_fw-la by_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n they_o acknowledge_v they_o have_v receive_v that_o gift_n and_o office_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o gregory_n will_v take_v away_o and_o make_v void_a this_o order_n and_o subvert_v this_o authority_n of_o bishop_n and_o reduce_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o power_n of_o one_o man_n neither_o can_v he_o otherwise_o oppress_v frederick_n who_o they_o open_o proclaim_v their_o most_o dear_a and_o most_o pious_a prince_n and_o seem_v they_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a for_o sake_n he_o matter_n remain_v as_o they_o do_v the_o emperor_n then_o say_v the_o author_n after_o he_o have_v appease_v the_o rebellion_n of_o austria_n come_v to_o winter_n at_o turin_n and_o gregory_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o one_o matthew_n a_o preach_a friar_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o such_o sort_n of_o man_n will_v not_o undertake_v enter_v into_o a_o league_n with_o james_n tiepoli_n duke_n of_o venice_n have_v allure_v into_o the_o same_o confederacy_n the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n bononia_n bresse_n and_o other_o of_o lombardie_n over_o who_o be_v appoint_v general_n gregory_n de_fw-fr montelongo_n that_o they_o may_v break_v forth_o into_o open_a rebellion_n upon_o the_o first_o occasion_n offer_v and_o lest_o frederick_n shall_v receive_v aid_n from_o germany_n he_o win_v the_o german_a prince_n and_o captain_n according_a as_o he_o understand_v they_o be_v lead_v with_o covetousness_n or_o ambition_n in_o distribute_v unto_o they_o the_o tenthes_o and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a good_n for_o to_o engage_v they_o against_o their_o bishop_n and_o do_v so_o much_o by_o the_o cunning_a practice_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o the_o preach_a friar_n that_o work_v upon_o the_o passion_n and_o naughty_a affection_n of_o man_n he_o bring_v a_o good_a part_n of_o germany_n to_o sheathe_v their_o sword_n in_o their_o own_o bowel_n wherefore_o thing_n thus_o set_v in_o order_n he_o proceed_v to_o excommunicate_v frederick_n and_o under_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n the_o conspirator_n of_o italy_n take_v arm_n at_o the_o same_o time_n assemble_v the_o troop_n of_o germany_n assist_v with_o his_o legate_n man_n of_o chief_a authority_n but_o particular_o prick_v forward_o by_o one_o albert_n behan_n a_o noble_a churchman_n factious_a and_o learned_a to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a business_n for_o four_o year_n have_v first_o by_o oath_n secret_o bind_v he_o unto_o he_o and_o arm_v he_o to_o that_o end_n with_o three_o bull_n the_o first_o be_v a_o invective_n against_o frederick_n a_o prince_n as_o it_o say_v believe_v amiss_o concern_v christ_n have_v none_o other_o drift_n than_o to_o overthrow_v christian_a religion_n which_o that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o effect_n he_o labour_v to_o bring_v the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n into_o extreme_a poverty_n the_o second_o contain_v a_o interdiction_n of_o divine_a service_n to_o all_o the_o follower_n of_o frederick_n and_o pronounce_v all_o his_o officer_n vassal_n and_o subject_n absolve_v from_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n the_o three_o a_o prohibition_n that_o no_o man_n of_o what_o quality_n or_o condition_n soever_o shall_v assist_v he_o in_o deed_n word_n or_o will_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o he_o fortify_v these_o bull_n with_o gift_n benefice_n and_o dignity_n for_o to_o corrupt_v and_o win_v more_o easy_o the_o counsellor_n &_o secretary_n of_o prince_n according_a as_o he_o know_v each_o man_n more_o or_o less_o capable_a of_o this_o service_n and_o here_o aventine_n declare_v particular_o all_o the_o circumstance_n thus_o at_o length_n this_o mighty_a rebellion_n in_o germany_n break_v forth_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v these_o bull_n carry_v about_o by_o the_o preach_a friar_n but_o on_o the_o other_o part_n conrade_n son_n of_o frederick_n call_v to_o he_o all_o the_o good_a man_n and_o invit_v the_o faithful_a prince_n and_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o their_o duty_n and_o settle_v himself_o to_o a_o defence_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o those_o bull_n come_v not_o any_o one_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o of_o all_o the_o abbot_n as_o few_o they_o all_o be_v astonish_v at_o this_o novelty_n all_o be_v inflame_v with_o anger_n all_o protest_v public_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o germany_n no_o right_a without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v they_o feed_v his_o italian_n we_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n dog_n of_o the_o flock_n will_v keep_v away_o the_o wolf_n that_o come_v cover_v in_o sheep_n skin_n learn_v hence_o what_o this_o counterfeit_a vicar_n will_v do_v to_o other_o when_o he_o bear_v himself_o thus_o towards_o his_o brethren_n and_o colleague_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n say_v sigefride_n bishop_n of_o ratisbone_n and_o other_o in_o a_o solemn_a sermon_n before_o otho_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n promise_v at_o their_o own_o charge_n every_o year_n to_o maintain_v six_o hundred_o horseman_n for_o the_o excellent_a most_o christian_a and_o most_o pious_a emperor_n frederick_n so_o conrade_n bishop_n of_o frisingen_n so_o eberard_n of_o saltzburg_n and_o radiger_n bishop_n of_o bathaw_n or_o passaw_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o give_v a_o box_n on_o the_o ear_n to_o he_o that_o deliver_v he_o those_o bull_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n wherefore_o they_o all_o declare_v that_o albert_n and_o in_o he_o the_o pope_n himself_o to_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n a_o disturber_n of_o peace_n a_o most_o dangerous_a hypocrite_n and_o a_o false_a prophet_n neither_o yet_o be_v eberard_n content_n with_o this_o he_o reconcile_v frederick_n of_o austria_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v this_o prince_n of_o austria_n but_o eberard_n present_o absolu_v he_o and_o moreover_o write_v to_o otho_n duke_n of_o bavaria_n that_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o to_o expel_v that_o albert_n a_o serpent_n in_o his_o bosom_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n also_o the_o bishop_n of_o bamberge_n take_v the_o messenger_n of_o albert_n and_o strip_v they_o the_o bishop_n of_o brixen_n stop_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o alps_n to_o the_o end_n that_o none_o may_v go_v to_o rome_n the_o same_o do_v also_o the_o bishop_n of_o alteich_n who_o he_o have_v excommunicate_a for_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o frederick_n in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o bishop_n not_o only_o call_v his_o commandment_n into_o doubt_n but_o as_o a_o hater_n of_o christian_a concord_n and_o as_o a_o most_o pernicious_a arch_a heretic_n throughout_o the_o religion_n of_o all_o priest_n and_o monk_n excommunicate_a he_o and_o declare_v he_o worse_o than_o the_o turk_n jew_n saracen_n or_o tartarian_n publish_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o pope_n among_o christian_n against_o divine_a and_o humane_a right_n against_o the_o law_n against_o the_o commandment_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o will_v not_o be_v commit_v among_o the_o most_o cruel_a tartarian_n it_o come_v so_o far_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o ratisbone_n and_o of_o bathaw_n lead_v troop_n of_o cross_a
contemner_n of_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o their_o supplanter_n creeper_n into_o royal_a chamber_n and_o adulterator_n of_o confession_n as_o they_o that_o roam_v over_o unknown_a province_n administer_v a_o liberty_n and_o boldness_n of_o sin_v all_o these_o complaint_n be_v hear_v the_o pope_n command_v that_o this_o new_a book_n which_o they_o call_v the_o eternal_a gospel_n shall_v secret_o and_o with_o as_o little_a scandal_n as_o can_v be_v to_o the_o friar_n be_v burn_v with_o some_o other_o invention_n which_o be_v say_v to_o proceed_v from_o joachims_n erroneous_a brain_n this_o execution_n therefore_o be_v close_o and_o privy_o perform_v and_o with_o as_o little_a scandal_n as_o possible_a may_v be_v to_o the_o friar_n through_o the_o special_a diligence_n of_o cardinal_n hugo_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o messina_n both_o which_o be_v of_o the_o predicant_n order_n so_o as_o this_o tumult_n at_o that_o time_n cease_v and_o sleep_v the_o opinion_n of_o this_o gospel_n be_v these_o that_o god_n the_o father_n reign_v under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o son_n under_o grace_n but_o by_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o four_o order_n mendicant_n the_o holy_a ghost_n begin_v then_o to_o reign_v and_o so_o shall_v do_v while_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o they_o only_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o believe_v in_o this_o new_a gospel_n that_o christ_n gospel_n be_v not_o true_a perfect_a nor_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n as_o also_o his_o sacrament_n be_v of_o little_a esteem_n but_o if_o this_o new_a one_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o it_o as_o far_o exceed_v it_o as_o the_o sun_n do_v the_o moon_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v ground_v on_o this_o new_a gospel_n will_v in_o the_o same_o proportion_n excel_v the_o other_o precedent_n the_o author_n notwithstanding_o of_o these_o invention_n which_o be_v to_o be_v extirpate_v the_o pope_n do_v tollerat_a and_o support_v because_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o seem_v just_a and_o equal_a to_o they_o so_o it_o make_v for_o their_o prerogative_n and_o power_n and_o they_o be_v afraid_a especial_o lest_o these_o their_o huckster_n shall_v grow_v out_o of_o grace_n with_o the_o people_n by_o who_o tongue_n and_o talon_n so_o much_o good_a booty_n and_o spoil_n come_v unto_o their_o hand_n wherefore_o that_o same_o william_n of_o s._n amour_n one_o of_o wonderful_a estimation_n among_o good_a man_n both_o preach_v &_o write_v against_o they_o declare_v in_o his_o sermon_n that_o he_o affect_v above_o all_o other_o crime_n to_o be_v zealous_a in_o discover_v of_o hypocrisy_n because_o this_o bring_v more_o damage_n and_o prejudice_n to_o true_a piety_n than_o all_o the_o other_o beside_o as_o also_o in_o that_o the_o church_n be_v now_o overgrow_v with_o the_o same_o sin_n and_o no_o body_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n dare_v lay_v hand_n to_o the_o irradication_n of_o it_o among_o other_o we_o read_v at_o this_o day_n a_o book_n of_o his_o entitle_v de_fw-fr periculis_fw-la mundi_fw-la seu_fw-la novissimorum_fw-la temporum_fw-la which_o begin_v thus_o quia_fw-la nos_fw-la vacantes_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripture_n antichristo_fw-la matth._n paris_n in_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la etc._n etc._n print_v at_o basil_n in_o the_o year_n 1555_o and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v suspect_v of_o falsity_n see_v matthew_n paris_n in_o a_o great_a volume_n that_o he_o write_v against_o antichrist_n comprehend_v the_o same_o whole_o and_o entire_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o this_o questionless_a because_o it_o be_v make_v and_o publish_v by_o authority_n thereof_o especial_o in_o that_o he_o always_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o which_o book_n he_o convince_v they_o that_o they_o preach_v unsent_a or_o at_o least_o without_o a_o mission_n canonical_a against_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o fraudulent_o conceal_v that_o which_o shall_v most_o principal_o be_v deliver_v that_o they_o creep_v into_o house_n and_o insinuate_v into_o the_o people_n privity_n by_o confession_n 1555._o gulielmus_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr periculis_fw-la mundi_fw-la edito_fw-la basileae_n an._n 1555._o who_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o bring_v under_o their_o power_n the_o easy_a to_o command_v and_o rule_v they_o and_o they_o call_v themselves_o general_n aider_n and_o supporter_n of_o the_o church_n prefer_v themselves_o before_o all_o man_n even_o before_o the_o religious_a order_n themselves_o and_o to_o appear_v the_o more_o holy_a they_o devise_v new_a and_o superstitious_a tradition_n that_o they_o love_v the_o high_a place_n at_o invitement_n the_o chief_a chair_n in_o synagogue_n reverence_n and_o low_a bowing_n in_o the_o open_a market_n place_n and_o of_o man_n to_o be_v call_v rabbi_n that_o they_o vaunt_v of_o the_o great_a good_a they_o do_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n boast_v of_o their_o own_o and_o their_o follower_n miracle_n and_o chaleng_v the_o praise_n of_o that_o they_o never_o perform_v that_o under_o pretext_n of_o humility_n they_o insinuate_v themselves_o into_o the_o court_n of_o prince_n and_o affect_v to_o be_v repute_v courtier_n that_o they_o smooth_v the_o defect_n of_o man_n and_o arrogant_o assume_v a_o far_o great_a zeal_n than_o that_o of_o ordinary_a pastor_n that_o at_o first_o man_n entertain_v they_o joyful_o but_o at_o last_o they_o grow_v weary_a of_o they_o the_o which_o happen_v quite_o contrary_a with_o the_o true_a apostle_n that_o they_o ask_v with_o importunity_n and_o receive_v indifferent_o not_o to_o relieve_v necessity_n but_o to_o prosecute_v their_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n to_o conclude_v that_o they_o solicit_v and_o sue_v to_o obtain_v letter_n commendatorie_a from_o great_a man_n and_o here_o the_o reader_n may_v observe_v the_o manner_n and_o carriage_n of_o these_o neotericke_a pharisy_n the_o same_o man_n deliver_v in_o a_o certain_a sermon_n 1555._o duo_o conciones_fw-la gulielmi_n de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la in_o antilogia_fw-la basileae_n edita_fw-la an._n 1555._o that_o christ_n choose_v plain_a and_o simple_a man_n to_o preach_v but_o antichrist_n on_o the_o contrary_a for_o the_o propagation_n of_o his_o falsity_n and_o error_n make_v election_n of_o man_n of_o a_o double_a heart_n subtle_a and_o expert_a in_o worldly_a policy_n and_o not_o only_a antichrist_n himself_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o but_o also_o his_o member_n and_o champion_n no_o marvel_n therefore_o though_o they_o persecute_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o death_n see_v john_n say_v in_o his_o apocalyps_n i_o see_v a_o beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n that_o have_v seven_o head_n and_o seven_o horn_n this_o beast_n be_v intend_v by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o certain_a year_n after_o john_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n william_n disciple_n and_o laurence_n a_o english_a man_n defend_v these_o proposition_n public_o in_o sorbon_n in_o a_o sermon_n of_o his_o he_o particular_o admonish_v the_o church_n mysticis_fw-la laurentius_n anglicus_n in_o defension_n gulielmi_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la &_o tractat._n cavendum_fw-la esse_fw-la à_fw-la pseudoprophetis_fw-la serm._n 2._o in_o die_v philippi_n &_o jacobi_n thomas_n cantipratensis_fw-la in_o apibus_fw-la mysticis_fw-la that_o a_o great_a danger_n hang_v over_o her_o head_n by_o the_o monk_n that_o they_o be_v the_o seducer_n and_o minister_n of_o antichrist_n of_o antichrist_n who_o be_v hard_o at_o their_o door_n but_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v suppress_v the_o scandal_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n lest_o it_o may_v have_v prejudice_v his_o affair_n take_v a_o occasion_n of_o revenge_n against_o william_n of_o s._n omers_n and_o some_o other_o his_o like_a for_o the_o denunciation_n of_o these_o truth_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n he_o publish_v and_o declare_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n as_o also_o he_o complain_v of_o he_o to_o our_o prince_n that_o have_v need_n of_o his_o help_n and_o favour_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v expel_v out_o of_o the_o university_n which_o remain_v as_o it_o be_v desert_a and_o forsake_v exciting_a in_o like_a manner_n thomas_n bonaventura_n and_o other_o to_o write_v against_o he_o so_o as_o all_o true_a divinity_n yield_v to_o sophistry_n and_o paul_n to_o aristotle_n but_o so_o the_o mendicant_n on_o the_o other_o side_n even_o seize_v on_o the_o divinity_n scholes_n and_o the_o canonist_n on_o the_o civilians_n chair_n that_o so_o all_o point_n be_v decide_v by_o gratian_n and_o lombard_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o mention_n in_o school_n out_o of_o their_o study_n therefore_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o come_v book_n easy_a to_o be_v smell_v by_o their_o very_a title_n as_o summae_fw-la repertoria_n quodlibeta_n rosaria_n legendae_fw-la specula_fw-la in_fw-la sententias_fw-la decreta_fw-la ordines_fw-la monachorum_fw-la regulas_fw-la confessiones_fw-la tractatus_fw-la de_fw-la
clement_n election_n john_n also_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n and_o many_o other_o prince_n the_o recourse_n be_v such_o as_o at_o the_o enter_v in_o of_o the_o multitude_n a_o wall_n instant_o fall_v down_o many_o be_v crush_v among_o who_o charles_n the_o king_n brother_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o britain_n be_v sore_o hurt_v and_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v overthrow_v and_o his_o mitre_n strike_v from_o his_o head_n whereof_o one_o jewel_n of_o inestimable_a price_n be_v lose_v and_o all_o these_o thing_n presage_v disaster_n and_o ruin_n this_o make_v all_o man_n believe_v that_o he_o transfer_v the_o papacy_n into_o france_n for_o some_o special_a end_n because_o this_o new_a pope_n at_o his_o first_o entry_n create_v many_o french_a cardinal_n in_o who_o hand_n lay_v the_o whole_a authority_n and_o power_n of_o election_n then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o roman_n may_v not_o grow_v into_o any_o great_a discontent_n he_o send_v they_o three_o cardinal_n on_o who_o he_o confer_v the_o dignity_n of_o senator_n that_o so_o they_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n supply_v his_o absence_n now_o in_o the_o year_n 1308_o albertus_n be_v slay_v 1308._o an._n 1308._o the_o elector_n choose_v for_o emperor_n henry_n son_n to_o henry_n count_n of_o lutzemburg_n call_v the_o seven_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o noble_a valour_n and_o fortitude_n impose_v on_o he_o the_o diadem_n at_o aquisgrane_fw-la who_o present_o send_v ambassador_n to_o clement_n be_v at_o auignion_n to_o obtain_v at_o his_o hand_n that_o his_o coronation_n may_v be_v celebrate_v at_o rome_n which_o clement_n yield_v unto_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o within_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n he_o shall_v go_v into_o italy_n but_o henry_n not_o attend_v a_o appoint_a day_n pass_v the_o alps_n come_v into_o italy_n where_o he_o find_v many_o city_n of_o the_o guelphish_a faction_n ill_o affect_v towards_o he_o who_o have_v former_o bind_v themselves_o unto_o he_o in_o very_o strict_a league_n as_o also_o robert_n king_n of_o sicilia_n the_o pope_n friend_n who_o supply_v they_o with_o force_n to_o erect_v strong_a garrison_n where_o special_a need_n do_v require_v a_o army_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o bring_v with_o he_o to_o defend_v their_o league_n and_o society_n but_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n many_o that_o receive_v he_o with_o great_a applause_n suffer_v he_o willing_o to_o have_v both_o succour_n and_o captain_n but_o especial_o in_o lombardie_n which_o be_v more_o remote_a from_o robert_n be_v the_o less_o subject_a to_o his_o plot_n and_o stratagem_n when_o he_o come_v to_o viterbe_n the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n meet_v and_o salute_v he_o conduct_v he_o honourable_o to_o rome_n at_o his_o entry_n he_o discover_v a_o conspiracy_n on_o foot_n against_o he_o and_o therefore_o for_o his_o security_n he_o bind_v the_o nobility_n to_o he_o by_o oath_n and_o put_v sufficient_a defensive_a force_n into_o all_o the_o strong_a place_n many_o also_o add_v hereunto_o that_o out_o of_o a_o new_a and_o unknown_a example_n he_o will_v have_v exact_v a_o tribute_n of_o the_o people_n on_o the_o same_o day_n when_o other_o emperor_n contrariwise_o be_v wont_v to_o give_v great_a largess_n for_o these_o respect_n therefore_o the_o guelph_n find_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o people_n against_o he_o especial_o be_v back_v by_o robert_n king_n of_o sicilia_n who_o under_o colour_n of_o honour_v this_o festivitie_n be_v come_v thither_o henry_n therefore_o be_v crown_v at_o s._n john_n lateran_n leave_v the_o city_n to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v enforce_v to_o retire_v to_o tivoli_n whither_o he_o be_v go_v they_o then_o manifest_o show_v how_o they_o be_v not_o so_o precise_o enjoin_v to_o set_v the_o crown_n on_o his_o head_n as_o to_o forbid_v he_o the_o city_n for_o upon_o his_o occasion_n clement_n present_o enact_v this_o law_n 13._o henricus_fw-la steron_fw-gr in_o anna●ibus_fw-la sub_fw-la annum_fw-la ●313_n clemès_fw-fr ne_fw-fr sede_fw-la vacant_a aliquid_fw-la innovetur_fw-la jdem_fw-la de_fw-la sententia_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr re_fw-mi iudicata_fw-la collenuc_fw-la lib._n 5._o henricus_fw-la stero_n in_o annalibus_fw-la trithem_fw-mi in_o chron._n in_o abbate_n hen._n 13._o that_o the_o elect_a king_n of_o roman_n in_o germany_n can_v neither_o be_v hold_v nor_o take_v for_o absolute_a emperor_n before_o they_o receive_v this_o title_n and_o investiture_n from_o the_o pope_n own_o hand_n and_o moreover_o that_o during_o the_o interregnum_fw-la and_o vacancy_n of_o that_o dignity_n the_o pope_n shall_v rule_v and_o command_v over_o all_o the_o city_n and_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o last_v not_o long_o for_o this_o good_a prince_n go_v towards_o sienna_n and_o besiege_v bonconuento_n by_o the_o way_n in_o few_o day_n after_o he_o be_v poison_v whereof_o he_o die_v out_o of_o the_o precedent_a story_n let_v the_o reader_n conjecture_v of_o his_o death_n although_o in_o this_o point_n all_o writer_n consent_n that_o this_o poison_n be_v administer_v to_o he_o by_o one_o bernard_n a_o dominican_n who_o be_v henry_n confessor_n in_o the_o host_n from_o whence_o grow_v this_o verse_n jure_fw-la dolet_fw-la mundus_fw-la quod_fw-la jacobita_fw-la secundus_fw-la judas_n nunc_fw-la extat_fw-la mors_fw-la caesaris_fw-la haec_fw-la manifestat_fw-la the_o world_n much_o grieve_v a_o jacobine_n make_v great_a show_n of_o piety_n shall_v prove_v a_o second_o judas_n poison_v the_o imperial_a majesty_n and_o some_o affirm_v the_o pope_n legate_n instigate_a he_o thereunto_o they_o that_o put_v their_o hand_n into_o these_o practice_n believe_v they_o unfayned_o think_v you_o in_o their_o heart_n transubstantiation_n other_o relate_v that_o the_o dominican_n priest_n in_o commemoration_n of_o this_o heinous_a deed_n be_v command_v afterward_o to_o communicate_v only_o with_o the_o left_a hand_n a_o indictment_n be_v frame_v against_o this_o criminal_a by_o henry_n count_n of_o flanders_n and_o other_o noble_a man_n of_o the_o army_n but_o the_o party_n after_o he_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o poison_n make_v a_o escape_n aventine_n note_n that_o clement_n become_v a_o enemy_n to_o henry_n because_o in_o receive_v the_o crown_n he_o deny_v to_o take_v a_o oath_n before_o the_o cardinal_n say_v how_o it_o be_v against_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o a_o prince_n of_o prince_n and_o lord_n over_o all_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o a_o oath_n by_o a_o servant_n of_o servant_n by_o mean_n whereof_o he_o stir_v up_o robert_n of_o naples_n and_o other_o prince_n against_o himself_o then_o he_o perceive_v this_o robert_n practice_n to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n by_o poison_n appoint_v he_o a_o day_n of_o trial_n when_o he_o mean_v to_o have_v pronounce_v he_o a_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n and_o so_o have_v strip_v they_o of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o clement_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o to_o dispose_v any_o way_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n but_o to_o the_o roman_a see_v of_o which_o he_o hold_v in_o homage_n clement_n be_v make_v pope_n by_o charles_n count_n of_o valois_n his_o procurement_n according_a to_o antoninus_n he_o promise_v by_o solemn_a oath_n to_o perform_v six_o thing_n which_o be_v set_v down_o florent_fw-la antonin_n part_n tit._n 21._o c._n 1._o parag_v 3._o villain_n in_o historia_n florent_fw-la both_o in_o antoninus_n and_o other_o writer_n first_o that_o he_o shall_v absolve_v all_o those_o that_o have_v colleague_v against_o boniface_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v redeliver_v the_o hat_n to_o the_o cardinal_n collanaes_n one_o thing_n he_o reserve_v to_o be_v propound_v in_o due_a and_o convenient_a time_n which_o be_v to_o raze_v out_o the_o very_a memorial_n of_o boniface_n exclude_v his_o name_n out_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o pope_n and_o to_o disinterre_v his_o carcase_n chronico_fw-la an._n 1310._o chronic._n martini_n chronic._n monsort_n thom._n walsingham_n in_o chronico_fw-la in_o the_o year_n therefore_o 1310_o in_o auignion_n philip_n king_n of_o france_n be_v public_o excuse_v by_o he_o of_o some_o matter_n that_o he_o have_v attempt_v against_o the_o memory_n of_o boniface_n sometime_o pope_n he_o pronounce_v further_o in_o the_o king_n behalf_n that_o what_o he_o do_v he_o do_v out_o of_o a_o good_a mind_n intention_n and_o zeal_n the_o king_n orator_n be_v then_o present_a and_o these_o thing_n consequent_o as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n this_o business_n be_v present_o refer_v to_o pope_n clement_n who_o in_o this_o process_n of_o boniface_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v both_o accusant_fw-la and_o defendant_n the_o pope_n undertake_v both_o to_o examine_v and_o final_o to_o determine_v this_o controversy_n item_n at_o the_o same_o time_n pope_n clement_n absolve_v william_n de_fw-fr nogarete_n
change_v except_o the_o senate_n at_o any_o time_n think_v good_a to_o use_v some_o prorogation_n lewis_n proceed_v yet_o further_o by_o the_o roman_n instigation_n who_o have_v many_o time_n in_o vain_a summon_v and_o solicit_v the_o pope_n as_o their_o natural_a bishop_n to_o reside_v at_o rome_n cause_v election_n to_o be_v make_v of_o peter_n corbario_n of_o rietto_n 1327._o an._n 1327._o a_o friar_n minorite_n by_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v a_o very_a learned_a man_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o manage_n of_o any_o government_n who_o be_v call_v nicholas_n the_o five_o and_o there_o be_v many_o that_o he_o make_v both_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n nay_o and_o moreover_o john_n be_v convince_v in_o a_o solemn_a council_n of_o heresy_n he_o condemn_v he_o to_o be_v burn_v which_o sentence_n be_v present_o and_o public_o execute_v in_o effigy_n or_o picture_n after_o the_o performance_n whereof_o set_v all_o thing_n in_o as_o good_a order_n as_o be_v possible_a in_o italy_n he_o think_v good_a to_o return_v into_o germany_n which_o be_v wonderful_o molest_v by_o johns_n art_n and_o stratagem_n from_o such_o a_o form_n of_o contention_n kindle_v in_o christendom_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v but_o a_o general_a confusion_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o some_o year_n before_o john_n call_v philip_n de_fw-fr valois_n and_o other_o prince_n into_o italy_n with_o prevalent_a force_n against_o lewis_n and_o the_o more_o to_o endear_v unto_o he_o philip_n who_o afterward_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n he_o permit_v he_o to_o levy_v a_o ten_o of_o his_o whole_a clergy_n naugiaco_fw-it antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 21._o c._n 6._o part_n 6._o &_o 9_o auent_n l._n 7._o guiielmus_fw-la de_fw-fr naugiaco_fw-it under_o pretext_n of_o a_o enter_v into_o a_o war_n against_o the_o infidel_n which_o custom_n his_o predecessor_n have_v former_o take_v up_o thus_o all_o thing_n hang_v in_o doubtful_a balance_n by_o the_o variable_a success_n of_o affair_n till_o lewis_n in_o germany_n come_v to_o a_o accord_n with_o frederick_n who_o be_v glad_a to_o redeem_v his_o own_o liberty_n by_o yield_v up_o the_o empire_n now_o nicholas_n the_o five_o johns_n corrival_n in_o italy_n martini_n an._n 1334._o supplem_n martini_n be_v deliver_v into_o johns_n hand_n by_o the_o pisanes_n who_o revolt_v from_o lewis_n confirmat_fw-la antonin_n part_n 3._o tit_n 21._o c._n 6._o part_n 15._o summa_fw-la constit_fw-la à_fw-fr greg._n 9_o ad_fw-la sixt._n 5._o usque_fw-la constit_fw-la paternum_fw-la morem_fw-la annales_n francia_fw-la christianus_n massaeus_n in_o chronico_fw-la guilielmus_fw-la ockam_n in_o opere_fw-la 90_o dicrum_fw-la ad●ianus_fw-la 6._o in_o quaest_n de_fw-fr confirmat_fw-la he_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n wherefore_o john_n king_n of_o bohemia_n interpose_v himself_o to_o procure_v some_o peace_n betwixt_o they_o upon_o condition_n but_o during_o the_o negotiation_n in_o the_o year_n 1334_o john_n die_v at_o auignion_n christendom_n be_v all_o over_o in_o turmoil_n but_o especial_o all_o the_o province_n and_o city_n of_o italy_n all_o historiographer_n concur_v in_o this_o that_o john_n leave_v behind_o he_o a_o huge_a treasure_n in_o ready_a coin_n some_o say_v fifteen_o and_o other_o five_o and_o twenty_o milliones_fw-la auri_fw-la million_o of_o gold_n which_o for_o those_o time_n be_v very_o wonderful_a for_o under_o colour_n of_o recover_v palestina_n he_o gramd_v and_o grip_v all_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o admonish_v edward_n king_n of_o england_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o impose_v such_o grievous_a burden_n upon_o the_o irish_a the_o government_n of_o who_o say_v he_o my_o predecessor_n adrian_n grant_v unto_o you_o under_o certain_a condition_n but_o by_o what_o right_a or_o succession_n suppose_v you_o shall_v these_o people_n any_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o other_o matter_n he_o public_o preach_v in_o auignion_n that_o the_o soul_n yea_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o faithful_a do_v not_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n before_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o understand_v from_o certain_a vision_n of_o one_o tundall_n a_o irish_a man_n and_o two_o monk_n he_o send_v to_o paris_n one_o a_o minorite_n and_o the_o other_o a_o dominican_n to_o preach_v this_o opinion_n out_o of_o his_o suggestion_n and_o to_o exhort_v the_o sorbon_n to_o embrace_v the_o same_o labour_v also_o the_o like_a in_o other_o university_n but_o king_n philip_n of_o valois_n assemble_v all_o the_o learnede_a divine_n of_o his_o kingdom_n at_o bois_n de_fw-fr vincennes_n who_o express_o censure_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v plain_a heresy_n in_o these_o thing_n thomas_n wallis_n durandus_fw-la de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it portiano_n william_n cale_v and_o other_o author_n be_v plentiful_a aventine_n add_v that_o he_o read_v a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o the_o divine_n live_v amid_o these_o dissension_n especial_o of_o those_o of_o paris_n by_o which_o they_o tax_v he_o of_o heresy_n persuade_v he_o to_o renounce_v this_o opinion_n which_o they_o say_v he_o do_v by_o their_o persuasion_n not_o many_o day_n before_o his_o death_n but_o he_o may_v rather_o peradventure_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o the_o modern_a divine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o as_o the_o same_o author_n relate_v he_o send_v for_o certain_a man_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o bohemia_n and_o austria_n who_o have_v paint_v the_o trinity_n 7._o auent_n l._n 7._o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o old_a man_n a_o young_a man_n and_o a_o dove_n as_o yet_o at_o this_o day_n they_o use_v to_o do_v who_o he_o charge_v with_o irreligion_n denounce_v they_o to_o be_v anthropomorphite_n who_o he_o condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v although_o in_o so_o clear_a a_o sunshine_n of_o the_o gospel_n both_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o his_o follower_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o allow_v and_o defend_v the_o same_o quorundam_fw-la in_o extravag_n johan_n 22._o tit_n de_fw-fr verb._n signific_a c._n 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o &_o cap._n ad_fw-la candidorem_fw-la cum_fw-la inter_fw-la non_fw-la nullos_fw-la quia_fw-la quorundam_fw-la nicholas_n the_o five_o wonderful_o promote_v the_o minorite_n and_o john_n labour_v hard_a according_a to_o the_o usual_a inconstancy_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n to_o suppress_v &_o beat_v they_o down_o and_o this_o by_o such_o argument_n as_o plain_o overthrow_v the_o mendicant_n foundation_n for_o concern_v the_o question_n whether_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n hold_v any_o thing_n in_o proper_a he_o say_v we_o must_v herein_o believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o which_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v confirm_v which_o teach_v we_o that_o they_o possess_v something_o in_o proper_a and_o therefore_o to_o believe_v otherwise_o be_v heresy_n and_o he_o that_o otherwise_o affirm_v be_v to_o be_v repute_v a_o heretic_n and_o because_o their_o most_o glorious_a pretext_n be_v in_o a_o wilful_a poverty_n he_o turn_v they_o to_o beggary_n indeed_o enjoin_v they_o to_o be_v content_a with_o mere_a alm_n show_v how_o the_o custom_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la permit_v to_o they_o by_o nicholas_n the_o five_o with_o a_o exception_n of_o property_n reserve_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v but_o a_o plain_a delusion_n and_o cozenage_n that_o so_o they_o may_v cunning_o be_v exempt_v from_o that_o poverty_n which_o they_o profess_v and_o therefore_o the_o mendicant_n be_v drive_v to_o beg_v their_o live_n from_o door_n to_o door_n grow_v mighty_o incense_v against_o he_o he_o further_o argue_v that_o christ_n never_o command_v nor_o advise_v christian_n to_o relinquish_v their_o good_n that_o he_o never_o set_v down_o any_o other_o rule_v of_o piety_n to_o the_o apostle_n than_o to_o other_o christian_n to_o who_o perfection_n the_o possession_n of_o movable_n or_o immovables_n be_v no_o way_n repugnant_a that_o the_o apostle_n never_o vow_v poverty_n nor_o never_o out_o of_o vow_n renounce_v their_o temporal_a good_n who_o questionless_a even_o as_o other_o godly_a man_n do_v both_o might_n and_o may_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n contend_v for_o temporal_a good_n and_o the_o naked_a vow_n be_v no_o furtherance_n at_o all_o to_o christian_a perfection_n but_o to_o this_o point_n he_o grow_v say_v aventine_n that_o such_o franciscan_n as_o now_o live_v from_o hand_n to_o mouth_n and_o beg_v from_o door_n to_o door_n that_o speak_v against_o his_o opinion_n in_o preach_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n possess_v nothing_o he_o condemn_v of_o impiety_n and_o pernicious_a error_n banish_v they_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n call_v they_o fraterculos_fw-la silly_a brethren_n and_o many_o also_o he_o burn_v the_o same_o aventine_n observe_v in_o these_o time_n that_o what_o be_v former_o distribute_v for_o the_o sustentation_n of_o the_o poor_a be_v now_o convert_v to_o ornament_n set_v forth_o of_o wall_n and_o glorious_a pomp_n which_o be_v out_o of_o
and_o least_o of_o all_o over_o the_o majesty_n imperial_a and_o if_o he_o usurp_v the_o same_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o divine_a law_n to_o resist_v he_o therein_o by_o word_n by_o deed_n by_o all_o mean_n and_o all_o endeavour_n and_o not_o do_v so_o they_o shall_v be_v unjust_a and_o injurious_a to_o god_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o that_o fight_v for_o he_o and_o these_o false_a prerogative_n may_v be_v repute_v to_o be_v the_o devil_n champion_n that_o the_o emperor_n confirmation_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n much_o less_o his_o election_n nay_o and_o this_o manner_n of_o his_o coronation_n by_o reason_n of_o many_o abuse_n grow_v from_o the_o same_o bring_v some_o danger_n to_o the_o empire_n but_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o emperor_n be_v a_o christian_a prince_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n may_v nominat_fw-la a_o pope_n and_o the_o party_n be_v absent_a confirm_v he_o nominate_v if_o he_o be_v accuse_v or_o object_v against_o he_o may_v reduce_v he_o into_o the_o true_a way_n and_o judge_v he_o by_o a_o council_n that_o peter_n when_o he_o live_v as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n may_v fall_v nay_o and_o err_v neither_o be_v the_o pope_n by_o any_o privilege_n exempt_v from_o error_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n oravi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la this_o may_v be_v extend_v likewise_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o therefore_o he_o can_v be_v no_o sure_a of_o his_o faith_n &_o constancy_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o only_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o sacred_a bible_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n in_o who_o disesteem_v we_o must_v neither_o believe_v the_o pope_n nor_o the_o church_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n only_o about_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n because_o very_o often_o by_o their_o wicked_a interpretation_n and_o opinion_n they_o have_v lead_v miserable_a man_n to_o hell_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v proper_o the_o general_a body_n and_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a not_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o cardinal_n no_o not_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o and_o the_o same_o be_v true_o represent_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o general_a council_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o other_o christian_a prince_n and_o in_o time_n past_a be_v so_o perpetual_o call_v and_o sure_o my_o very_a conscience_n urge_v i_o to_o comprehend_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v what_o he_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n because_o never_o any_o man_n more_o plentiful_o display_v by_o what_o degree_n and_o pretence_n the_o pope_n have_v attain_v to_o this_o height_n of_o tyranny_n as_o also_o i_o will_v request_v the_o reader_n not_o to_o think_v it_o tedious_a to_o read_v over_o the_o book_n itself_o especial_o speak_v of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n 24._o marsil_n patavi_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 24._o those_o say_v he_o which_o have_v visit_v the_o roman_a court_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o significant_o a_o staple_n of_o trafficke_n more_o horrible_a than_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n or_o they_o who_o have_v not_o see_v it_o may_v understand_v by_o the_o report_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n worthy_a of_o credit_n that_o it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n become_v the_o very_a receptacle_n of_o all_o bad_a and_o wicked_a practitioner_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a for_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o than_o a_o concourse_n of_o simoniac_n what_o other_o than_o a_o harsh_a rude_a bawl_n of_o barretter_n a_o asylum_n for_o slanderer_n and_o the_o trouble_n and_o vexation_n of_o honest_a man_n there_o the_o innocent_n justice_n be_v hazard_v or_o at_o least_o so_o long_o protract_v if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o compass_v it_o by_o money_n and_o bribe_n that_o at_o last_o exhaust_v and_o toil_v with_o innumerable_a disturbance_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o let_v fall_v their_o miserable_a and_o tedious_a suit_n for_o there_o indeed_o humane_a law_n reecho_n and_o sound_n out_o but_o divine_a precept_n be_v be_v silent_a or_o seldom_o hear_v there_o be_v counsel_n and_o consultation_n of_o invade_a christian_a prince_n by_o arm_a and_o violent_a power_n conquer_a and_o take_v the_o same_o from_o they_o to_o who_o custody_n and_o jurisdiction_n they_o be_v lawful_o commit_v but_o for_o purchase_v of_o soul_n there_o be_v neither_o care_n nor_o counsel_v take_v whereunto_o we_o may_v annexe_v that_o there_o no_o order_n but_o perpetual_a horror_n and_o confusion_n inhabit_v and_o as_o for_o myself_o that_o have_v see_v and_o be_v present_a i_o think_v i_o behold_v that_o fearful_a statue_n which_o in_o the_o second_o of_o daniel_n be_v represent_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n in_o a_o dream_n have_v a_o head_n of_o gold_n arm_n and_o breast_n of_o silver_n belly_n and_o thigh_n of_o brass_n iron_n leg_n and_o the_o foot_n one_o part_n iron_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o earth_n and_o so_o apply_v it_o in_o every_o part_n brazen_a breast_n and_o thigh_n say_v he_o because_o of_o the_o shrill_a and_o large_a promise_n and_o the_o vocal_a though_o fallacious_a absolution_n from_o sin_n and_o penalty_n and_o the_o unjust_a and_o terrible_a malediction_n and_o condemnation_n of_o such_o as_o but_o defend_v their_o own_o liberty_n or_o observe_v due_a fidelity_n to_o their_o sovereign_n though_o through_o god_n protection_n all_o this_o rage_n and_o tumour_n be_v but_o vain_a and_o innocuous_a and_o no_o marvel_n it_o be_v that_o the_o index_n romanus_n forbid_v all_o man_n the_o read_v thereof_o john_n de_fw-fr jandun_v a_o gantois_n maintain_v the_o same_o proposition_n who_o also_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o same_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n a_o man_n of_o rare_a learning_n in_o those_o tempestuous_a day_n as_o may_v plain_o be_v collect_v by_o his_o work_n print_v both_o at_o venice_n and_o florence_n also_o leopald_v of_o bebemburg_n doctor_n of_o the_o law_n and_o bishop_n of_o bamburg_n who_o handle_v the_o same_o argument_n namely_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v absolute_a power_n of_o govern_v the_o empire_n present_o after_o his_o election_n and_o the_o pope_n coronation_n add_v nothing_o to_o he_o to_o who_o he_o be_v neither_o vassal_n nor_o feudatarie_n he_o also_o convict_v constantine_n donation_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a fable_n the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n be_v de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la imperij_fw-la print_v at_o paris_n anno_fw-la 1540_o but_o michael_n of_o cesenna_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n speak_v much_o more_o broad_o and_o confident_o for_o he_o say_v express_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n the_o roman_a church_n babylon_n which_o be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o therefore_o antoninus_n place_v he_o among_o the_o fratricelli_n or_o poor_a friar_n of_o lion_n who_o as_o former_o we_o see_v be_v the_o very_a progeny_n of_o the_o waldense_n this_o man_n and_o his_o follower_n particular_o aver_v that_o pope_n john_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o all_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n that_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o 1_o antonin_n parte_fw-la 3._o tit_n 21._o c._n 5._o sect_n 1_o and_o diverse_a say_v antoninus_n be_v burn_v in_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o world_n that_o stand_v firm_a in_o this_o opinion_n he_o also_o note_n that_o long_a time_n after_o the_o marquisat_n of_o ancona_n &_o florence_n itself_o be_v full_a of_o they_o from_o whence_o be_v expel_v they_o disperse_v themselves_o over_o the_o country_n of_o greece_n as_o also_o that_o lewis_n of_o bavaria_n the_o emperor_n be_v a_o supporter_n of_o these_o opinion_n and_o among_o other_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o one_o john_n castiglio_n and_o francis_n de_fw-fr harcatara_n franciscan_n pulchro_n paulus_n aemilius_n in_o carolo_n pulchro_n who_o be_v burn_v hereupon_o our_o paulus_n aemilius_n descend_v into_o these_o word_n under_o king_n charles_n the_o fair_a there_o live_v many_o admirable_a wit_n and_o most_o learned_a man_n this_o age_n flourish_v in_o learning_n some_o of_o they_o be_v very_o holy_a man_n and_o some_o contend_v ambitious_o to_o excel_v other_o exceed_v a_o mean_a grow_v to_o be_v wicked_a and_o impious_a other_o there_o be_v of_o who_o manner_n and_o intention_n a_o doubtful_a conjecture_n may_v be_v make_v good_a man_n grieve_v for_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o time_n and_o silent_o lament_v and_o they_o who_o be_v call_v fraterculi_fw-la condemn_v both_o by_o deed_n and_o writing_n ecclesiastical_a wealth_n and_o opulencie_n and_o preach_v that_o riches_n the_o purple_a robe_n and_o domination_n be_v unbeseeming_a and_o unproper_a for_o religion_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o the_o life_n of_o philip_n de_fw-fr valois_n we_o learn_v both_o out_o of_o he_o and_o other_o french_a writer_n that_o pope_n john_n what_o need_v soever_o he_o have_v of_o our_o
by_o this_o mean_n to_o abate_v lewis_n his_o affection_n towards_o the_o english_a but_o say_v the_o author_n the_o cardinal_n 7._o auent_n l._n 7._o a_o perverse_a kind_n of_o man_n detract_v day_n after_o day_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n in_o diverse_a convocation_n delude_v he_o while_o at_o length_n they_o resolve_v that_o his_o impiety_n towards_o the_o pope_n the_o great_a god_n upon_o earth_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v let_v pass_v unpunished_a the_o sum_n therefore_o of_o his_o answer_n be_v this_o that_o lewis_n shall_v first_o so_o dispose_v of_o himself_o as_o to_o give_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n and_o then_o he_o may_v solicit_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o absolution_n the_o pope_n cause_v his_o monetorie_n in_o form_n of_o a_o placart_n to_o be_v fasten_v on_o the_o gate_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o auignion_n wherein_o he_o be_v command_v to_o surcease_v his_o imperial_a administration_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n within_o a_o certain_a day_n to_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n the_o ambassador_n declare_v that_o they_o have_v a_o large_a commission_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n contentment_n so_o he_o will_v but_o set_v down_o his_o demand_n in_o special_a article_n chron._n albertus_n argent_fw-fr in_o chron._n when_o he_o thus_o enjoin_v that_o he_o shall_v unfeigned_o confess_v all_o his_o error_n and_o heresy_n item_n that_o he_o shall_v resign_v the_o empire_n and_o not_o to_o reassume_v the_o same_o before_o by_o the_o pope_n favour_n it_o be_v confer_v upon_o he_o to_o commit_v both_o himself_o his_o son_n his_o good_n and_o his_o whole_a state_n to_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o disposition_n with_o many_o other_o strange_a and_o unusual_a injunction_n there_o be_v no_o man_n suppose_v that_o ever_o lewis_n will_v have_v accept_v of_o these_o condition_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o only_o subscribe_v unto_o they_o under_o hand_n and_o seal_v but_o a_o protonotary_n be_v present_a who_o be_v send_v from_o the_o pope_n for_o this_o purpose_n he_o both_o swear_v their_o observance_n and_o also_o never_o to_o revoke_v they_o so_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o the_o cardinal_n be_v herewith_o astonish_v the_o ambassador_n therefore_o take_v a_o oath_n in_o his_o name_n desire_v certain_a article_n of_o penance_n to_o ●e_v deliver_v to_o they_o suppose_v that_o no_o obstacle_n now_o remain_v behind_o but_o then_o the_o pope_n abuse_v malicious_o his_o simple_a humility_n digest_v other_o article_n which_o concern_v not_o his_o person_n but_o the_o very_a state_n and_o respect_n of_o his_o empire_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v revoke_v all_o the_o decree_v enact_v against_o john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o christ_n vicar_n cut_v off_o former_a act_n recant_v all_o opprobry_n and_o public_o by_o a_o perpetual_a edict_n establish_v that_o the_o empire_n be_v the_o fee_n and_o donation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o neither_o can_v just_o be_v or_o be_v call_v caesar_n before_o he_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o same_o as_o also_o that_o he_o shall_v deliver_v ockam_n with_o his_o colleague_n and_o associate_n into_o his_o hand_n the_o which_o article_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o prince_n elector_n and_o city_n imperial_a by_o copy_n send_v all_o over_o they_o meet_v at_o franckfort_n the_o year_n 1344_o in_o the_o the_o month_n of_o september_n to_o deliberat_fw-la and_o consult_v of_o they_o there_o with_o joint_a consent_n all_o solemn_a rite_n observe_v they_o decree_v that_o these_o article_n be_v most_o impious_a and_o tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o emperor_n by_o his_o oath_n imperial_a undertake_v can_v by_o no_o mean_n assent_v thereunto_o that_o embassador_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o complain_v of_o these_o article_n and_o if_o he_o persist_v in_o this_o severity_n they_o will_v let_v slack_v no_o mean_n to_o preserve_v the_o honour_n right_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o conclude_v they_o send_v prince_n and_o great_a state_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o understand_v their_o resolution_n be_v the_o more_o incense_a to_o lodovike_v destruction_n &_o ruin_n and_o thereupon_o he_o begin_v to_o plot_n with_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n with_o charles_n his_o son_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o treve_n their_o uncle_n to_o erect_v another_o emperor_n opposite_a to_o lewis_n the_o which_o egg_n be_v hatch_v some_o two_o year_n after_o aventine_n here_o note_n that_o the_o king_n demand_v of_o the_o parisian_a divine_n about_o this_o affair_n they_o make_v answer_v that_o clement_n answer_n be_v not_o only_o wicked_a and_o insolent_a but_o contrary_a to_o all_o christian_a equity_n and_o justice_n clement_n therefore_o the_o year_n 1346_o 1346._o an._n 1346._o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n bitter_o curse_v lewis_n he_o denounce_v he_o both_o a_o heretic_n &_o schismatic_n admonish_v the_o prince_n by_o a_o certain_a day_n to_o choose_v another_o emperor_n that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o long_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o advocate_n otherwise_o the_o apostolical_a see_n will_v think_v upon_o one_o he_o also_o depose_v the_o archbishop_n of_o magunce_n from_o virnberg_n because_o he_o have_v maintain_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o empire_n constitute_v gerlac_n nassau_n in_o his_o place_n the_o bishop_n of_o strasbourg_n he_o absolve_v after_o he_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n no_o more_o to_o assist_v lewis_n he_o employ_v bernard_n of_o lutzemberg_n elector_n of_o treve_n and_o by_o his_o solicitation_n through_o money_n and_o promise_n draw_v unto_o himself_o many_o prince_n and_o thus_o by_o the_o negotiation_n of_o this_o new_a elector_n of_o magunce_n he_o call_v a_o diet_n at_o reynsey_n upon_o rhine_n wherein_o charles_n of_o lutzemberg_n son_n to_o john_n king_n of_o bohemia_n be_v anoint_v emperor_n the_o four_o of_o that_o name_n and_o he_o be_v then_o in_o france_n to_o aid_v king_n philip_n against_o the_o english_a the_o pope_n absolve_v he_o of_o his_o oath_n make_v to_o lewis_n and_o encourage_v he_o both_o with_o word_n and_o mean_n to_o assume_v the_o diadem_n imperiall_n lewis_n on_o the_o other_o side_n assemble_v the_o state_n at_o spire_n complain_v of_o so_o great_a and_o singular_a a_o treachery_n entreat_v and_o importune_v the_o prince_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a to_o revenge_v this_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o who_o also_o undertake_v his_o protection_n detest_a both_o the_o pope_n and_o charles_n his_o attempt_n then_o ockam_n and_o many_o other_o write_v the_o more_o vehement_o against_o clement_n as_o hereafter_o you_o shall_v see_v and_o a_o more_o cruel_a war_n than_o ever_o before_o arise_v in_o germany_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n favour_n and_o assistance_n charles_n have_v always_o the_o worst_a when_o he_o come_v to_o aquisgrane_fw-la to_o be_v crown_v the_o gate_n be_v shut_v against_o he_o and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o liege_n will_v have_v receive_v he_o the_o citizen_n expel_v the_o bishop_n himself_o and_o raise_v the_o siege_n lay_v to_o it_o yet_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n he_o determine_v to_o be_v crown_v at_o collen_n especial_o the_o bishop_n favour_v he_o but_o the_o inhabitant_n refuse_v he_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o be_v consecrate_v at_o bona_n while_o at_o length_n lewis_n oppose_v his_o wisdom_n to_o charles_n his_o youthful_a heat_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o year_n 1347_o 1347_o an._n 1347._o paulus_n langius_n in_o chron._n citicens_n de_fw-fr a_fw-fr 1347_o leave_v the_o place_n vacant_a some_o say_v he_o die_v of_o poison_n othersome_a say_v of_o a_o apoplexy_n but_o certain_o the_o most_o famous_a man_n of_o that_o age_n high_o commend_v this_o prince_n who_o to_o the_o accumulation_n of_o all_o virtue_n beseem_v a_o noble_a and_o renown_a prince_n be_v in_o nothing_o defective_a but_o in_o his_o mild_a and_o soft_a proceed_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n clement_n publish_v a_o bull_n in_o favour_n of_o charles_n wherein_o he_o enjoin_v the_o prince_n of_o germany_n to_o receive_v he_o as_o the_o faithful_a child_n of_o the_o church_n extort_v this_o fruit_n from_o all_o his_o labour_n and_o study_v employ_v that_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o none_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v emperor_n who_o the_o pope_n christ_n vicar_n do_v not_o approve_v of_o and_o to_o believe_v otherwise_o be_v a_o most_o pernicious_a heresy_n and_o for_o the_o sure_a obligation_n of_o they_o to_o these_o point_n he_o urge_v they_o to_o a_o oath_n which_o part_n of_o the_o prince_n shrink_v from_o and_o some_o very_o open_o oppugn_v for_o say_v they_o do_v that_o servant_n of_o servant_n so_o swell_v and_o insult_v in_o pride_n and_o arrogancy_n as_o that_o open_o with_o a_o shameless_a countenance_n he_o contend_v to_o surmount_v the_o vice_n and_o insolence_n of_o all_o the_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n we_o have_v
see_v rome_n again_o whether_o charles_n the_o emperor_n with_o the_o empress_n come_v to_o salute_v he_o and_o then_o again_o to_o remove_v all_o suspicion_n three_o month_n after_o he_o depart_v out_o of_o italy_n one_o only_a thing_n charles_n perform_v in_o this_o journey_n for_o he_o cause_v the_o pope_n to_o seek_v for_o peter_n and_o paul_n head_n among_o the_o old_a ruin_n and_o rubbish_n which_o say_v our_o author_n be_v by_o god_n favour_n and_o furtherance_n find_v he_o put_v they_o in_o a_o eminent_a place_n in_o saint_n john_n lateran_n church_n adorn_v with_o much_o silver_n gold_n and_o many_o gem_n let_v the_o reader_n but_o mark_n well_o this_o imposture_n what_o probability_n or_o likelihood_n there_o be_v that_o after_o the_o revolution_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o year_n they_o can_v be_v discern_v or_o distinguish_v from_o other_o scull_n the_o pope_n during_o all_o this_o be_v not_o idle_a for_o beside_o carillaes_n erect_v of_o citadel_n in_o all_o the_o strong_a place_n of_o romania_n vrban_n particular_o bend_v his_o whole_a study_n to_o build_v palace_n at_o oruietto_n and_o montefiascone_n for_o the_o cardinal_n transalpines_n thither_o to_o retire_v in_o time_n of_o immoderate_a heat_n lest_o complain_v of_o distemperature_n of_o air_n they_o may_v make_v this_o a_o occasion_n to_o depart_v far_o from_o the_o city_n whither_o he_o mean_v to_o have_v reduce_v they_o but_o that_o in_o his_o return_n into_o france_n he_o die_v at_o marselles_n these_o thing_n occur_v in_o the_o year_n 1371_o when_o peter_n beaufort_n a_o lymosine_n and_o nephew_n to_o clement_n the_o sixth_o be_v create_v pope_n by_o the_o name_n of_o gregory_n the_o eleven_o at_o which_o time_n rome_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o senator_n who_o by_o the_o pope_n order_n be_v to_o be_v change_v every_o sixth_o month_n and_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o city_n be_v commit_v to_o certain_a banderet_n which_o be_v to_o say_v to_o diverse_a captain_n of_o several_a ward_n or_o quarter_n so_o term_v of_o certain_a banner_n or_o colour_n which_o every_o one_o have_v and_o this_o order_n take_v place_n since_o under_o vrban_n the_o five_o certain_a noble_a stranger_n be_v prefer_v to_o the_o dignity_n senatoriall_a as_o rubeus_n tissius_n a_o florentine_a a_o guelph_n out_o of_o prato_n and_o bolsena_n and_o boniface_n and_o richard_n out_o of_o pistoria_n which_o i_o deliver_v to_o this_o end_n because_o the_o banderet_n to_o the_o year_n 1400_o possess_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a state_n italy_n moreover_o be_v every_o where_o tumultuous_a with_o faction_n but_o especial_o the_o florentine_n make_v some_o sign_n of_o affect_a liberty_n whither_o many_o city_n from_o all_o other_o part_v send_v their_o aid_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v themselves_o they_o forage_v all_o over_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o digest_v the_o emperor_n neither_o at_o rome_n nor_o in_o italy_n and_o therefore_o gregory_n determ_v to_o reduce_v again_o at_o length_n his_o see_n to_o rome_n blondus_n relate_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v admonish_v by_o he_o to_o repair_v into_o his_o own_o diocese_n he_o make_v this_o answer_n and_o you_o holy_a father_n why_o go_v you_o not_o to_o your_o own_o church_n other_o say_v he_o do_v this_o be_v persuade_v in_o revelation_n by_o s._n bridget_n and_o katherine_n of_o sienna_n but_o when_o he_o see_v this_o be_v dipleasing_a to_o the_o french_a cardinal_n and_o also_o to_o his_o near_a kinsman_n he_o cause_v a_o number_n of_o tryremes_n to_o be_v privy_o build_v upon_o the_o rhodan_n and_o so_o with_o such_o as_o he_o make_v privy_a to_o his_o resolution_n he_o be_v in_o they_o first_o convey_v to_o genoa_n from_o thence_o to_o coruetto_n and_o so_o in_o the_o year_n 1376_o in_o the_o month_n of_o januarie_n he_o come_v to_o rome_n by_o land_n thus_o after_o seventie_o year_n continuance_n his_o seat_n at_o auignion_n come_v to_o a_o end_n but_o gregory_n not_o long_o after_o die_v there_o begin_v the_o most_o grievous_a schism_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o at_o his_o first_o access_n gregory_n be_v entertain_v by_o the_o roman_n with_o great_a applause_n they_o suppose_v that_o together_o with_o he_o wealth_n and_o riches_n will_v enter_v into_o their_o city_n but_o when_o gregory_n seem_v to_o terrify_v the_o whole_a world_n with_o his_o thundering_n and_o excommunication_n that_o he_o send_v forth_o near_o at_o hand_n &_o among_o the_o rest_n excommunicate_v the_o florentine_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o bernabo_n visconti_n they_o draw_v thither_o one_o john_n haucut_n and_o english_a captain_n a_o man_n of_o great_a fame_n for_o his_o martial_a prowess_n with_o his_o force_n and_o nothing_o respect_v the_o pope_n interdict_v but_o contemn_v his_o censure_n they_o enforce_v the_o priest_n to_o celebrate_v sacred_a office_n and_o the_o genoese_n themselves_o permit_v the_o use_n of_o all_o holy_a function_n to_o those_o florentine_n which_o be_v flee_v into_o their_o city_n though_o they_o be_v general_o interdict_v wheresoever_o they_o live_v they_o therefore_o call_v likewise_o upon_o themselves_o the_o pope_n interdict_v and_o bernabo_n who_o he_o hold_v for_o a_o friend_n afar_o off_o come_v near_a hand_n drive_v gregory_n into_o some_o suspicion_n and_o jealousy_n lest_o unlooked_a for_o he_o may_v procure_v he_o one_o disturbance_n upon_o another_o now_o therefore_o he_o begin_v to_o repent_v himself_o of_o his_o return_n and_o be_v at_o point_n of_o death_n in_o the_o year_n 1378_o 1378._o an._n 1378._o he_o advise_v the_o cardinal_n that_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o give_v any_o credit_n to_o revelation_n see_v he_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o s._n bridget_n and_o katherine_n of_o sienna_n return_v into_o italy_n with_o such_o disastrous_a and_o ominous_a success_n among_o other_o doctor_n gerson_n note_v this_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr examine_v doctrinarum_fw-la florentino_n machiavelli_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr historia_n florentino_n machiavelli_n be_v the_o author_n that_o write_v how_o this_o cregorie_n while_o he_o live_v in_o auignion_n govern_v italy_n by_o legate_n who_o through_o their_o wonderful_a avarice_n and_o pride_n overthrow_v many_o city_n one_o of_o which_o have_v his_o seat_n at_o bologna_n who_o abuse_v to_o his_o own_o purpose_n the_o famine_n and_o dearth_n of_o a_o hard_a year_n attempt_v to_o make_v himself_o lord_n of_o all_o tuscan_a and_o namely_o of_o florence_n by_o reduce_v they_o to_o such_o a_o extreme_a misery_n and_o famine_n from_o whence_o spring_v the_o original_n of_o that_o war_n above_o mention_v all_o which_o his_o design_n notwithstanding_o fell_a to_o the_o ground_n for_o other_o matter_n these_o good_a pope_n be_v ever_o hammer_v of_o some_o deep_a mystery_n doctrinarum_fw-la gerson_n in_o tractat_fw-la de_fw-mi examine_v doctrinarum_fw-la for_o innocent_a the_o sixth_o institute_v a_o festival_n day_n in_o memorial_n of_o the_o lance_n and_o nail_n wherewith_o our_o lord_n be_v pierce_v and_o by_o the_o same_o theology_n i_o pray_v you_o why_o may_v not_o caiphas_n and_o pilate_n be_v put_v into_o the_o legend_n of_o saint_n and_o pope_n vrban_n the_o five_o consecrate_v that_o sunday_n which_o be_v call_v laetare_fw-la rosa_fw-la which_o hymn_n be_v first_o send_v to_o joan_n queen_n of_o sicilia_n that_o famous_a harlot_n who_o kill_v her_o husband_n then_o after_o he_o all_o his_o successor_n continue_v the_o custom_n every_o lent_n to_o gratify_v one_o prince_n or_o other_o with_o this_o donative_n aurea_fw-la illa_fw-la rosa_fw-la with_o that_o golden_a rose_n which_o they_o consecrate_v in_o a_o mass_n with_o wonderful_a pomp_n diverse_a prayer_n anoint_v over_o with_o balsamum_n scatter_v with_o powder_a musk_n sprinkle_v with_o holy_a water_n and_o last_o fume_v with_o frankincense_n in_o sign_n say_v they_o both_o of_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a jerusalem_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o antichrist_n christ_n ape_n must_v needs_o have_v his_o sacrament_n apart_o which_o jerome_n foresee_v will_v come_v to_o pass_v at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o come_v forth_o those_o sigillary_n certain_a formulary_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n call_v agnus_n dei_fw-la which_o be_v usual_o hallow_v of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o their_o papacy_n and_o be_v also_o renew_v in_o the_o seven_o year_n the_o prayer_n by_o which_o they_o be_v consecrate_v be_v altogether_o execrable_a and_o accurse_a by_o their_o veneration_n and_o honour_n blot_v out_o the_o sin_n of_o we_o thy_o servant_n let_v the_o spot_n of_o our_o offence_n be_v cleanse_v pardon_v obtain_v grace_n confer_v and_o at_o length_n let_v they_o deserve_v to_o enjoy_v eternal_a life_n together_o with_o thy_o saint_n and_o elect_v of_o christ_n the_o true_a lamb_n of_o god_n what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o
of_o all_o the_o great_a man_n in_o the_o land_n which_o then_o flourish_v either_o in_o letter_n or_o arm_n obtain_v so_o far_o by_o his_o divine_a labour_n and_o zeal_n that_o truth_n from_o his_o mouth_n be_v hearken_v unto_o by_o many_o embrace_v and_o receive_v and_o happy_o preach_v for_o many_o year_n so_o as_o that_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n reviue_v by_o his_o operation_n and_o endeavour_n no_o puff_n or_o whirlwind_n can_v extinguish_v but_o rather_o it_o kindle_v unto_o we_o another_o fire_n all_o europe_n over_o i_o forbear_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o learning_n &_o incomparable_a solidity_n of_o his_o writing_n all_o which_o be_v due_o weigh_v especial_o in_o so_o tenebrous_a a_o age_n amidst_o so_o fearful_a flashing_n and_o lightning_n whereat_o the_o great_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n stoop_v and_o tremble_v i_o think_v no_o man_n can_v just_o make_v any_o doubt_n but_o that_o his_o spirit_n receive_v illumination_n courage_n and_o confidence_n from_o above_o that_o god_n wrought_v in_o and_o by_o he_o and_o in_o the_o weakness_n of_o a_o wretched_a and_o abject_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o world_n he_o intend_v the_o ruin_n of_o satan_n empire_n of_o that_o same_o plenary_a power_n so_o much_o boast_v of_o and_o so_o long_a time_n affect_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o so_o much_o as_o luther_n seem_v to_o have_v speak_v most_o worthy_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n rise_v again_o when_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n our_o saviour_n so_o as_o these_o petty_a desperate_a bishop_n be_v able_a to_o prevail_v nothing_o at_o all_o against_o they_o with_o their_o herod_n and_o pylats_n all_o the_o clergy_n out_o of_o doubt_n he_o wonderful_o amaze_v and_o astonish_v for_o thomas_n waldensis_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o martin_n the_o five_o spare_v not_o to_o tell_v how_o he_o wonder_v and_o admire_v at_o his_o irrefragible_a assertion_n at_o the_o perspicuous_a authority_n and_o inconuincible_a reason_n which_o he_o produce_v temporum_fw-la thom._n walden_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la martin_n 5._o thom._n walsingham_n in_o rich._n 2._o gulielm_n caxtonius_n in_o chron._n anno_fw-la 1171_o &_o 1372._o alius_fw-la fructus_fw-la temporum_fw-la and_o the_o chronologer_n of_o those_o time_n seem_v great_o to_o complain_v that_o both_o king_n edward_n and_o all_o his_o chief_a counsellor_n give_v attentive_a ear_n to_o he_o as_o also_o that_o the_o king_n be_v win_v by_o he_o to_o enact_v by_o parliament_n that_o the_o bishop_n from_o thenceforth_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o their_o metropolitan_o as_o in_o time_n past_a and_o not_o be_v tie_v upon_o this_o occasion_n to_o go_v personal_o to_o rome_n but_o waldensis_n mention_n some_o particular_a man_n that_o in_o england_n entertain_v his_o doctrine_n certain_a divine_n and_o master_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n robert_n rigg_n chancellor_n of_o the_o same_o university_n together_o with_o the_o two_o proctor_n and_o many_o other_o who_o he_o several_o nominate_v in_o the_o court_n the_o king_n himself_o and_o the_o prince_n of_o wales_n his_o son_n be_v his_o auditor_n john_n duke_n of_o lancaster_n lewis_z clifford_z william_n nevil_n john_n klenbow_n richard_n struny_n thomas_n latimer_n john_n montacute_n who_o deface_v image_n throughout_o all_o his_o jurisdiction_n john_n of_o salisbury_n who_o be_v at_o point_n of_o death_n reject_v the_o papistical_a sacrament_n with_o diverse_a other_o of_o the_o chief_a nobility_n beside_o john_n of_o northampton_n the_o major_a of_o london_n and_o sundry_a other_o notable_a citizen_n and_o burgess_n who_o many_o time_n disturb_v the_o bishop_n assembly_n and_o conventicle_n which_o be_v call_v for_o the_o suppress_n of_o wickliff_n but_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o want_v not_o many_o potent_a and_o mighty_a adversary_n among_o the_o bishop_n prelate_n monk_n but_o especial_o the_o mendicant_n who_o after_o edward_n death_n obtain_v of_o richard_n the_o second_o that_o wickliff_n shall_v be_v expel_v england_n he_o therefore_o repair_v into_o bohemia_n bring_v a_o great_a light_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o waldense_n when_o john_n hus_n be_v yet_o but_o a_o young_a man_n have_v diverse_a conference_n with_o he_o about_o divine_a matter_n but_o at_o length_n be_v recall_v home_o again_o from_o exile_n about_o the_o year_n 1387_o the_o last_o of_o december_n 1387._o an._n 1387._o he_o meek_o in_o his_o country_n yield_v up_o his_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o church_n of_o lutterworth_n within_o the_o county_n of_o leicester_n not_o without_o a_o singular_a miracle_n show_v herein_o notwithstanding_o the_o implacable_a rage_n and_o fury_n of_o his_o adversary_n although_o in_o the_o year_n 1428_o by_o pope_n martin_n the_o fifth_n order_n 1428._o an._n 1428._o he_o be_v by_o the_o prelate_n in_o england_n disinter_v and_o burn_v but_o god_n in_o his_o good_a time_n will_v redemaund_n the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n of_o all_o the_o element_n to_o who_o he_o will_v then_o most_o gracious_o communicate_v his_o happiness_n and_o glory_n amen_n here_o we_o may_v also_o adjoyne_v the_o principal_a head_n of_o wicklif_n doctrine_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o william_n wydford_n his_o adversary_n who_o invent_v many_o of_o they_o out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n the_o more_o to_o stir_v up_o envy_n against_o he_o but_o in_o a_o ward_n we_o may_v bold_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v no_o other_o in_o substance_n then_o such_o as_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n as_o may_v evident_o be_v see_v in_o many_o treatise_n which_o be_v extant_a both_o in_o latin_a and_o english_a touch_v the_o pope_n beside_o the_o point_n by_o we_o premise_v he_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v two_o only_a order_n of_o clerk_n those_o be_v priest_n and_o deacon_n for_o other_o degree_n they_o proceed_v from_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o the_o pope_n who_o counterfeit_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n servant_n in_o the_o work_n evangelicall_a be_v of_o no_o place_n or_o degree_n but_o satan_n special_a attorney_n and_o procurator_n that_o he_o may_v perpetual_o project_v and_o practice_v treason_n against_o christ_n also_o that_o he_o be_v point_v at_o throughout_o all_o the_o scripture_n for_o antichrist_n not_o his_o person_n simple_o but_o the_o chair_n and_o papal_a dignity_n from_o whence_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o creep_a in_o of_o all_o excess_n and_o sensuality_n confusion_n have_v invade_v the_o church_n how_o it_o be_v a_o most_o palpable_a heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o every_o militant_a church_n in_o europe_n depend_v on_o his_o see_n and_o authority_n that_o no_o man_n can_v ground_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n how_o such_o a_o vicar_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o have_v come_v in_o otherwise_o by_o worldly_a course_n and_o satan_n subtlety_n that_o christ_n have_v never_o any_o meaning_n to_o constitute_v a_o caesarian_a pope_n one_o that_o shall_v be_v both_o pope_n and_o emperor_n at_o a_o instant_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o prince_n serious_o to_o join_v both_o their_o heart_n and_o hand_n for_o the_o prohibit_v of_o such_o a_o satan_n to_o bear_v rule_n in_o the_o church_n his_o principal_a disciple_n in_o england_n grow_v very_o famous_a both_o by_o edition_n of_o book_n and_o for_o martyredome_n as_o walter_n bret_n john_n aston_n john_n ashwaly_n nicholas_n herford_n john_n puruer_n richard_n wit_n john_n oldcastle_n peter_n clarke_n william_n taylor_n william_n with_o who_o work_n and_o labour_n bale_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a monument_n the_o seed_n whereof_o bring_v forth_o afterward_o the_o fruit_n into_o england_n which_o we_o both_o have_v and_o daily_o see_v thomas_n walsingham_n special_o note_n 2._o thomas_n walsingham_n in_o richard_n 2._o that_o when_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v send_v wicklif_n condemnation_n to_o robert_n rigg_n chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n to_o be_v diwlge_v he_o appoint_v they_o to_o preach_v that_o day_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o most_o zealous_a follower_n of_o wickliff_n in_o contempt_n say_v he_o of_o the_o archiepiscopall_a precept_n and_o among_o other_o he_o ordain_v one_o philip_n rippinton_n a_o cannon_n of_o leycester_n to_o preach_v on_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n who_o conclude_v his_o sermon_n with_o these_o word_n for_o speculative_a doctrine_n say_v he_o such_o as_o be_v the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n i_o will_v set_v a_o bar_n on_o my_o lip_n while_o god_n have_v otherwise_o instruct_v or_o illuminate_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o same_o author_n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1378_o pope_n gregory_n the_o eleven_o his_o bull_n be_v present_v and_o read_v at_o oxford_n 1378._o an._n 1378._o and_o second_v with_o express_a letter_n both_o to_o the_o
king_n the_o archbishop_n and_o all_o other_o the_o chief_a and_o principall_a bishop_n wherein_o he_o use_v to_o they_o great_a reprehension_n for_o the_o slight_a care_n they_o have_v take_v in_o the_o suppress_n of_o wicklif_n doctrine_n those_o of_o the_o university_n be_v long_a time_n in_o suspense_n whether_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o pope_n bull_n with_o honour_n or_o reject_v it_o with_o reproach_n and_o at_o last_o very_o small_a account_n be_v make_v of_o it_o 60._o progression_n the_o contention_n between_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o frenchman_n about_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o division_n in_o the_o popedom_n between_o vrban_n the_o sixth_o and_o clement_n the_o seven_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o vrban_a to_o advance_v charles_n duras_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicilia_n and_o of_o the_o treachery_n towards_o joan_n queen_n of_o naples_n and_o otho_n duke_n of_o brunswick_n her_o husband_n of_o the_o jubilee_n begin_v by_o the_o say_a vrban_n but_o end_v in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o nine_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v mark_v in_o history_n with_o many_o schism_n of_o which_o some_o of_o they_o last_v for_o many_o year_n and_o now_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o so_o quote_v by_o their_o author_n and_o the_o long_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o continue_v for_o fifty_o year_n pope_n against_o pope_n the_o state_n of_o europe_n and_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christendom_n divide_v or_o rather_o rend_v and_o tear_v asunder_o while_o they_o repeal_v the_o act_v one_o of_o another_o and_o condemn_v each_o other_o ordinance_n curse_n and_o excommunicate_a the_o one_o the_o other_o and_o open_o pronounce_v the_o one_o the_o other_o to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o in_o book_n publish_v and_o yet_o extant_a concern_v that_o matter_n whereby_o many_o even_o in_o despite_n of_o their_o tooth_n open_v their_o eye_n to_o know_v they_o for_o such_o as_o they_o be_v insomuch_o that_o many_o detest_a open_o their_o hypocrisy_n forsake_v their_o synagogue_n and_o the_o other_o be_v make_v at_o least_o so_o much_o the_o more_o unexcusable_a of_o their_o enormity_n in_o the_o year_n than_o 1378_o gregory_n the_o eleven_o be_v decease_v the_o cardinal_n enter_v into_o the_o conclave_n at_o rome_n and_o the_o roman_n request_v that_o they_o will_v create_v pope_n if_o not_o a_o roman_a yet_o at_o least_o a_o italian_a least_o if_o he_o be_v a_o frenchman_n he_o shall_v withdraw_v his_o seat_n to_o auignion_n yea_o not_o content_v with_o prayer_n they_o make_v a_o tumult_n about_o s._n peter_n by_o the_o instigation_n as_o it_o be_v think_v of_o cardinal_n vrsino_n who_o affect_v the_o seat_n but_o the_o frenchman_n on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v the_o seat_n with_o they_o leave_v nothing_o unattempted_a to_o the_o contrary_a though_o weary_a of_o the_o lymosine_n pope_n who_o for_o many_o year_n have_v transport_v the_o mitre_n over_o from_o one_o to_o another_o notwithstanding_o in_o the_o end_n partly_o for_o fear_n and_o partly_o by_o bribe_v bartholomew_n archbishop_n of_o barrie_n a_o neapolitan_a be_v create_v pope_n and_o call_v vrban_n the_o sixth_o the_o frenchman_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n complain_v that_o they_o have_v be_v force_v in_o their_o suffrage_n 10._o theodor._n à_fw-fr nyem_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr schism_n inter_fw-la vrban_n 6._o &_o clement_n 7._o platina_n in_o vrban_n 6._o blondus_n decad._n 2._o l._n 10._o and_o here_o some_o author_n note_n that_o vrban_n have_v promise_v by_o oath_n to_o renounce_v the_o popedom_n whensoever_o they_o shall_v require_v it_o though_o the_o cardinal_n signify_v by_o letter_n his_o election_n to_o the_o christian_a prince_n as_o lawful_a and_o themselves_o adore_v he_o three_o month_n then_o be_v pass_v and_o the_o weather_n wax_v very_o hot_a for_o he_o have_v be_v create_v in_o march_n the_o french_a cardinal_n for_o change_v of_o air_n request_n leave_n of_o he_o to_o depart_v to_o anagnia_n which_o vrban_n grant_v and_o they_o assign_v their_o place_n of_o meeting_n at_o fundi_n whither_o they_o come_v and_o to_o make_v their_o party_n the_o strong_a they_o entice_v thither_o three_o italian_a cardinal_n with_o promise_n to_o each_o of_o they_o secret_o to_o make_v he_o pope_n if_o he_o come_v thither_o and_o then_o they_o choose_v for_o pope_n the_o cardinal_n of_o genova_n by_o the_o name_n of_o clement_n the_o seven_o against_o vrban_n the_o sixth_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o when_o vrban_n be_v request_v not_o to_o return_v into_o france_n these_o word_n chance_v to_o escape_v from_o he_o that_o he_o will_v ever_o abide_v at_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o rebuke_v the_o bishop_n open_o for_o that_o they_o reside_v in_o court_n whereas_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o their_o diocese_n which_o the_o cardinal_n of_o pampelone_n take_v very_o grievous_o against_o he_o platina_n add_v that_o these_o cardinal_n have_v peel_v the_o former_a pope_n after_o their_o death_n and_o fear_v to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n for_o it_o and_o let_v the_o reader_n hence_o judge_n with_o what_o goodly_a and_o lawful_a reason_n matter_n be_v govern_v in_o these_o conclave_n each_o of_o they_o then_o labour_v which_o can_v draw_v more_o prince_n and_o state_n of_o christendom_n to_o their_o obedience_n and_o to_o vrban_n obey_v all_o the_o italian_n and_o the_o florentine_n themselves_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o excommunication_n of_o his_o predecessor_n so_o that_o there_o only_o want_v to_o he_o the_o earl_n of_o fundi_n francis_n de_fw-fr vico_fw-la who_o hold_v viterbe_n and_o joan_n queen_n of_o naples_n who_o he_o have_v lose_v only_o by_o his_o peevishness_n and_o of_o stranger_n the_o german_n englishman_n and_o portugal_n to_o clement_n obey_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n and_o some_o there_o be_v which_o acknowledge_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v newter_n let_v we_o come_v to_o vrban_n in_o he_o be_v manifest_o verify_v the_o proverb_n 1._o theodor._n à_fw-fr nyem_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o he_o which_o make_v a_o pope_n know_v not_o what_o he_o do_v for_o theodorie_n à_fw-fr nyem_n his_o secretary_n who_o write_v this_o history_n tell_v we_o that_o before_o his_o popedom_n he_o be_v a_o humble_a and_o devout_a man_n and_o withhold_v his_o hand_n from_o all_o bribe_n a_o enemy_n and_o persecuter_n of_o simony_n and_o zealous_a of_o chastity_n and_o justice_n and_o out_o of_o that_o which_o follow_v may_v easy_o be_v judge_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n or_o whether_o the_o infection_n of_o the_o seat_n do_v not_o change_v his_o habitude_n this_o good_a queen_n of_o naples_n have_v rejoice_v exceed_o at_o his_o promotion_n to_o the_o popedom_n and_o for_o many_o day_n in_o naples_n have_v cause_v bonfire_n of_o joy_n to_o be_v make_v to_o honour_v he_o and_o beside_o other_o thing_n have_v send_v unto_o he_o in_o gift_n 40000_o ducat_n part_n in_o gold_n and_o part_n in_o silver_n for_o his_o first_o expense_n otho_n also_o duke_n of_o brunswick_n her_o husband_n have_v hold_v he_o very_o dear_a before_o he_o be_v pope_n and_o wonderful_o rejoice_v of_o his_o popedom_n but_o he_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o first_o that_o feel_v his_o pride_n for_o one_o day_n present_v drink_n unto_o he_o in_o his_o collation_n in_o presence_n of_o many_o cardinal_n he_o out_o of_o pride_n stay_v a_o long_a time_n before_o he_o will_v take_v the_o cup_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n kneel_v before_o he_o tell_v one_o of_o the_o cardinal_n say_v unto_o he_o holy_a father_n it_o be_v time_n to_o drink_v and_o some_o such_o like_a action_n help_v forward_o the_o schism_n not_o a_o little_a the_o author_n add_v here_o of_o his_o master_n that_o this_o say_n as_o then_o fail_v not_o in_o he_o asperius_fw-la while_o misere_fw-la cum_fw-la surgit_fw-la in_o altum_fw-la none_o be_v more_o proud_a than_o the_o wretch_n that_o be_v high_a advance_v and_o also_o that_o cord_n stat_fw-la inflato_fw-la pauper_fw-la honore_fw-la dato_fw-la a_o poor_a man_n advance_v to_o honour_n 8._o l._n 1._o c._n 8._o have_v his_o heart_n puff_v up_o with_o pride_n but_o likewise_o verify_v that_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n his_o heart_n shall_v be_v hard_a with_o evil_a in_o his_o late_a day_n notwithstanding_o otho_n before_o the_o schism_n break_v forth_o omit_v nothing_o that_o he_o can_v to_o reconcile_v he_o with_o the_o cardinal_n yet_o receive_v no_o better_a usage_n from_o he_o for_o have_v request_v he_o to_o approve_v the_o marriage_n of_o his_o cousin_n the_o marquesse_n of_o mont●errat_n with_o marie_n heir_n of_o sicily_n whereunto_o all_o the_o baron_n of_o the_o kingdom_n consent_v he_o flat_o refuse_v he_o have_v a_o intention_n by_o any_o mean_n to_o make_v the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n
that_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o without_o the_o damnation_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o can_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o union_n the_o old_a cardinal_n labour_v to_o get_v away_o from_o he_o but_o he_o charge_v they_o under_o most_o grievous_a pain_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v yea_o if_o the_o regent_n of_o luca_n have_v not_o by_o his_o wisdom_n provide_v for_o they_o their_o person_n have_v be_v in_o no_o safety_n but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o liege_n a_o man_n of_o a_o great_a spirit_n in_o disguise_n escape_v from_o luca_n and_o get_v to_o pisa_n yet_o be_v discover_v by_o some_o servant_n of_o gregory_n he_o continue_v there_o not_o without_o great_a danger_n of_o his_o life_n in_o like_a manner_n all_o the_o rest_n by_o little_a and_o little_o steal_v away_o be_v move_v neither_o with_o his_o promise_n nor_o threat_n from_o which_o they_o public_o appeal_v and_o solemn_o signify_v the_o same_o unto_o he_o sit_v in_o consistory_n amidst_o his_o new_a cardinal_n the_o cardinal_n of_o liege_n first_o make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o his_o letter_n 34._o cap._n 33._o &_o 34._o that_o god_n ought_v rather_o to_o be_v obey_v for_o if_o say_v he_o the_o pope_n command_v or_o will_v constrain_v to_o such_o thing_n as_o tend_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o soul_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o he_o ought_v not_o be_v obey_v neither_o by_o divine_a nor_o humane_a right_n yea_o and_o that_o man_n merit_v who_o for_o not_o obey_v in_o such_o a_o case_n do_v suffer_v his_o severe_a censure_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o now_o a_o twofold_a schism_n of_o benedict_n against_o gregory_n and_o of_o gregory_n against_o his_o own_o cardinal_n now_o upon_o this_o departure_n of_o the_o cardinal_n from_o gregory_n benedict_n make_v use_n of_o this_o occasion_n object_v unto_o he_o his_o crafty_a sleight_n which_o at_o length_n have_v burst_v forth_o into_o so_o evil_a a_o issue_n whereupon_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o into_o the_o country_n of_o arragon_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v see_v there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n of_o the_o union_n but_o gregory_n see_v he_o depart_v and_o be_v not_o yet_o weary_a of_o deceive_v assign_v a_o council_n at_o aquileia_n and_o to_o strengthen_v the_o same_o creat_v again_o new_a cardinal_n while_o on_o the_o other_o side_n benedict_n appoint_v likewise_o his_o council_n in_o arragon_n both_o of_o they_o ever_o under_o pretence_n of_o union_n but_o which_o neither_o of_o both_o desire_v both_o labour_a to_o assure_v thereby_o the_o popedom_n to_o himself_o alone_o which_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o benedict_n perceive_v they_o find_v mean_n to_o escape_v away_o from_o he_o and_o come_v to_o pisa_n there_o the_o cardinal_n of_o both_o side_n join_v together_o and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o florentine_n lord_n of_o pisa_n determine_v to_o hold_v there_o a_o council_n thither_o be_v both_o after_o a_o solemn_a manner_n cite_v to_o be_v present_a either_o personal_o or_o by_o their_o proxy_n have_v fit_a and_o due_a commission_n both_o do_v testify_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o they_o to_o call_v a_o council_n the_o cardinal_n on_o the_o contrary_n maintain_v that_o see_v the_o popedom_n be_v doubtful_a and_o divide_v neither_o of_o the_o striver_n for_o it_o can_v call_v a_o council_n because_o it_o will_v be_v a_o particular_a and_o not_o a_o universal_a one_o where_o a_o part_n only_o shall_v be_v present_a 38._o cap._n 36._o 37._o 38._o wherefore_o they_o pass_v further_o and_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o king_n of_o france_n england_n hungary_n arragon_n polonia_n and_o other_o that_o they_o will_v be_v present_a by_o their_o ambassador_n which_o the_o great_a part_n agree_v unto_o then_o after_o many_o session_n when_o neither_o they_o themselves_o nor_o any_o in_o their_o name_n appear_v all_o thing_n well_o and_o due_o examine_v 44._o cap._n 44._o they_o all_o with_o one_o voice_n pronounce_v that_o benedict_n and_o gregory_n damnable_o contend_v for_o their_o popedom_n be_v pronounce_v true_o and_o notorious_o in_o a_o petition_n present_v and_o exhibit_v to_o the_o sacred_a and_o universal_a synod_n that_o they_o have_v be_v and_o be_v very_a schismatic_n nourisher_n defender_n favourer_n approver_n and_o obstinate_a maintainer_n of_o a_o old_a schism_n heretic_n stray_v from_o the_o faith_n ensnare_v with_o notorious_a crime_n and_o enormous_a perjury_n notorious_o scandalize_a the_o universal_a holy_a church_n of_o god_n with_o incorrigibilitie_n contumacy_n and_o obstinacy_n in_o notorious_a evident_a and_o manifest_a crime_n and_o for_o these_o and_o other_o cause_n have_v make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o all_o honour_n and_o dignity_n and_o also_o of_o the_o papal_a they_o and_o each_o of_o they_o beside_o the_o foresay_a iniquity_n crime_n and_o excess_n commit_v that_o they_o may_v reign_v command_n and_o bear_v sway_n be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la cast_v away_o and_o deprive_v of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o also_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o all_o christian_n of_o all_o sort_n yea_o emperor_n king_n and_o other_o in_o any_o dignity_n be_v declare_v for_o ever_o absolve_v from_o their_o obedience_n forbid_v the_o faithful_a of_o christ_n in_o no_o wise_a to_o obey_v or_o intend_v to_o obey_v the_o foresay_a striver_n for_o the_o popedom_n or_o either_o of_o they_o neither_o shall_v they_o yield_v they_o either_o counsel_n help_n or_o favour_n or_o receive_v they_o or_o repair_v unto_o they_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o all_o and_o singular_a proceed_n and_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n suspension_n or_o other_o censure_n and_o pain_n of_o privation_n also_o of_o order_n and_o dignity_n etc._n etc._n give_v and_o thunder_v forth_o have_v be_v and_o be_v disannul_v revoke_v void_a of_o no_o strength_n efficacy_n or_o moment_n moreover_o promotion_n or_o rather_o profanation_n make_v of_o any_o whosoever_o to_o be_v cardinal_n by_o the_o say_a contender_n for_o the_o popedom_n and_o either_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o say_v angelus_n from_o the_o three_o day_n of_o may_n and_o by_o the_o foresay_a peter_n from_o the_o fiftenth_n of_o june_n of_o the_o year_n past_o 1408_o have_v be_v and_o be_v disadnul_v 1408._o an._n 1408._o revoke_v and_o make_v void_a which_o when_o benedict_n understand_v swell_v with_o choler_n he_o creat_v twelve_o cardinal_n in_o arragon_n gregory_n as_o many_o in_o germany_n but_o some_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o refuse_v the_o hat_n and_o for_o a_o upshot_n of_o his_o deceitful_a slight_n he_o fear_v not_o to_o publish_v that_o all_o difficulty_n remove_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o repair_v to_o what_o place_n the_o emperor_n robert_n sigismond_n king_n of_o hungary_n and_o ladislaus_n king_n of_o sicily_n shall_v like_v of_o 48._o cap._n 46._o 47._o 48._o but_o see_v say_v the_o author_n that_o there_o be_v manifest_o so_o many_o enimity_n and_o rancour_n for_o the_o cause_n aforesaid_a between_o robert_n sigismond_n and_o ladislaus_n it_o seem_v unpossible_a by_o any_o reason_n or_o humane_a wisdom_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o agree_v together_o how_o to_o make_v a_o union_n in_o the_o church_n i_o will_v we_o can_v have_v as_o good_a a_o witness_n of_o the_o crafty_a wile_n of_o benedict_n though_o this_o man_n do_v in_o many_o place_n lively_a enough_o represent_v they_o whence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o they_o strive_v to_o excel_v each_o other_o in_o wickedness_n but_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o guile_n of_o gregory_n shall_v be_v more_o exact_o show_v as_o he_o who_o they_o do_v rather_o approve_v and_o enregister_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o pope_n 33._o theodor._n à_fw-la niem_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 33._o furthermore_o he_o at_o length_n have_v suffer_v many_o trouble_n from_o his_o countryman_n the_o venetian_n who_o he_o use_v no_o better_a than_o other_o he_o get_v he_o to_o the_o coast_n of_o the_o abruzzo_n and_o fly_v for_o refuge_n to_o caieta_n commit_v himself_o to_o the_o protection_n of_o king_n ladislaus_n who_o command_v he_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o his_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o cardinal_n of_o both_o obedience_n choose_v pope_n peter_n philargas_n of_o candie_n by_o nation_n a_o greek_a a_o franciscan_a friar_n and_o name_v alexander_n the_o five_o he_o that_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o rich_a bishop_n a_o poor_a cardinal_n 52._o cap._n 51._o 52._o and_o a_o beggarly_a pope_n a_o man_n say_v the_o author_n live_v delicate_o and_o drink_v of_o strong_a wine_n who_o whole_o govern_v himself_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o balthasar_n cossa_n cardinal_n deacon_n who_o be_v afterward_o john_n the_o three_o and_o twenty_o the_o most_o wicked_a among_o all_o the_o pope_n therefore_o say_v theodorick_n he_o be_v no_o soon_o come_v
to_o the_o popedom_n but_o that_o all_o thing_n break_v forth_o into_o unbridled_a licentiousness_n so_o that_o in_o the_o ten_o month_n that_o he_o reign_v he_o bring_v more_o infamy_n to_o the_o seat_n than_o other_o in_o so_o many_o year_n the_o say_a pope_n also_o insert_v in_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o roll_n that_o he_o make_v for_o the_o familiar_n of_o cardinal_n that_o he_o have_v make_v that_o signature_n so_o large_o because_o that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o same_o lord_n cardinal_n in_o the_o conclave_n have_v promise_v that_o if_o he_o be_v choose_v pope_n he_o will_v grant_v all_o thing_n that_o their_o familiar_n shall_v request_v which_o he_o particular_o describe_v the_o reader_n may_v see_v further_o there_o so_o hard_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v even_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o long_o consult_v of_o after_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o find_v a_o honest_a man_n among_o so_o many_o of_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o to_o proceed_v in_o election_n without_o manifest_a simony_n now_o he_o die_v at_o bononia_n the_o three_o of_o may_v 1410_o and_o here_o theodorick_n finish_v that_o history_n baptista_n panaetius_n of_o ferrara_n a_o carmelite_n tell_v we_o that_o balthasar_n cossa_n 56._o monstrelet_n vol._n 1._o cap._n 62._o baptista_n panaetius_n ferrarian_n serm._n 56._o the_o inward_a familiar_a of_o alexander_n who_o after_o be_v john_n the_o three_o and_o twenty_o or_o as_o some_o other_o say_v the_o four_o and_o twenty_o nevertheless_o that_o he_o may_v succeed_v he_o poison_a he_o by_o marsilius_n de_fw-fr parma_n his_o physician_n hire_v with_o abundance_n of_o money_n and_o that_o be_v near_o his_o death_n he_o say_v to_o his_o cardinal_n that_o which_o christ_n have_v to_o his_o apostle_n my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o how_o can_v this_o slave_n of_o satan_n prince_n of_o the_o world_n give_v that_o peace_n which_o the_o world_n can_v give_v who_o in_o that_o very_a little_a space_n of_o time_n have_v band_v and_o oppose_v wenceslaus_n king_n of_o bohemia_n against_o the_o emperor_n robert_n in_o germany_n and_o in_o italy_n have_v crown_v lewis_n of_o anjou_n king_n of_o sicily_n and_o send_v he_o against_o ladislaus_n by_o his_o own_o absolute_a power_n without_o any_o form_n of_o law_n but_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v be_v more_o wise_a and_o circumspect_a in_o choose_v his_o successor_n be_v then_o at_o bononia_n where_o that_o balthaser_n reside_v as_o legate_n or_o rather_o rule_v as_o lord_n he_o command_v the_o cardinal_n to_o elect_v a_o pope_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o his_o like_n and_o they_o offer_v unto_o he_o many_o of_o which_o he_o think_v none_o fit_a enough_o pontificibus_fw-la johan_n stella_fw-la in_o pontificibus_fw-la till_o at_o last_o they_o request_v he_o plain_o to_o express_v his_o opinion_n give_v i_o say_v he_o the_o cloak_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o i_o will_v give_v it_o to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v pope_n which_o do_v he_o put_v it_o on_o his_o own_o shoulder_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o papa_n su●●ego_n it_o be_v i_o be_o pope_n how_o far_o from_o christ_n who_o vicar_n he_o make_v himself_o i_o be_o not_o come_v say_v he_o of_o myself_o and_o though_o the_o cardinal_n do_v in_o no_o sort_n approve_v the_o same_o yet_o none_o dare_v at_o that_o time_n speak_v against_o it_o but_o he_o fear_v lest_o in_o tract_n of_o time_n they_o shall_v attempt_v something_o against_o he_o dispatch_v legate_n present_o into_o germany_n to_o the_o prince_n to_o entreat_v they_o that_o the_o emperor_n robert_n be_v decease_v they_o will_v choose_v for_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n sigis●●nd_n king_n of_o hungary_n who_o to_o that_o ●nd_n he_o commend_v for_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n requisite_a which_o have_v obtain_v he_o assign_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n under_o colour_n to_o set_v the_o crown_n on_o his_o head_n but_o indeed_o that_o by_o his_o aid_n who_o thus_o he_o have_v oblige_v unto_o he_o he_o may_v firm_o establish_v his_o seat_n memorable_a be_v that_o which_o nicholas_n clemang●●_n archdeacon_n of_o bayeux_n a_o man_n famous_a in_o those_o time_n have_v leave_v write_v in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o he_o almost_o four_o year_n ago_o say_v he_o at_o the_o great_a instance_n of_o some_o that_o most_o perfidious_a balthasar_n late_o depose_v from_o peter_n seat_n which_o he_o most_o filth●lie_o defile_v have_v assemble_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n in_o which_o be_v very_o few_o stranger_n hold_v some_o session_n with_o some_o italian_n and_o courtier_n wearing_z out_o the_o time_n in_o matter_n superfluous_a and_o nothing_o belong_v to_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o when_o before_o the_o first_o meeting_n of_o the_o council_n mass_n be_v celebrate_v after_o the_o accustom_a manner_n for_o to_o invocat_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o the_o council_n be_v set_v and_o balthasar_n himself_o in_o a_o chair_n provide_v for_o he_o high_o than_o the_o rest_n behold_v a_o direful_a and_o deadly_a owl_n the_o messenger_n as_o they_o say_v ever_o of_o death_n or_o calamity_n come_v forth_o of_o her_o lurk_a hole_n sudden_o with_o a_o horrible_a voice_n fly_v and_o sit_v upon_o the_o middle_a beam_n of_o the_o temple_n with_o her_o eye_n direct_o fix_v on_o balthasar_n all_o begin_v to_o wonder_v that_o this_o night-bird_n which_o shun_v the_o light_n be_v come_v in_o full_a day_n light_n into_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o company_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n take_v this_o prodigy_n for_o a_o presage_n of_o evil_a luck_n behold_v say_v they_o with_o a_o low_a voice_n one_o to_o another_o the_o spirit_n be_v present_a in_o form_n of_o a_o owl_n and_o while_o they_o behold_v balthasar_n and_o one_o another_o they_o can_v hardly_o refrain_v themselves_o from_o laughter_n balthasar_z himself_o upon_o who_o only_o the_o owl_n have_v bend_v the_o sight_n of_o her_o eye_n blush_v with_o shame_n begin_v to_o sweat_v to_o be_v trouble_v in_o mind_n and_o to_o burn_v within_o himself_o and_o at_o length_n not_o find_v any_o other_o mean_v whereby_o to_o help_v himself_o from_o this_o confusion_n he_o break_v up_o the_o council_n rose_n and_o depart_v there_o follow_v afterward_o a_o second_o session_n in_o which_o again_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o before_o the_o owl_n fail_v not_o to_o come_v without_o be_v call_v i_o believe_v turn_v her_o sight_n ever_o towards_o balthasar_n who_o see_v she_o come_v again_o be_v with_o good_a cause_n trouble_v with_o great_a shame_n than_o before_o and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v she_o look_v any_o long_o he_o command_v she_o shall_v be_v drive_v away_o with_o fright_v clamour_n and_o with_o staff_n but_o she_o will_v not_o be_v fear_v neither_o with_o shout_n nor_o other_o disquieting_n till_o be_v grievous_o strike_v many_o blow_n with_o staff_n she_o fall_v down_o dead_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o all_o this_o say_v he_o i_o learn_v from_o a_o faithful_a friend_n of_o i_o who_o in_o those_o day_n come_v direct_o from_o rome_n and_o be_v adiur_v by_o i_o with_o all_o vehemency_n when_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o rareness_n i_o have_v begin_v to_o doubt_v of_o the_o matter_n he_o confirm_v the_o thing_n he_o have_v utter_v to_o be_v most_o true_a he_o add_v also_o that_o all_o they_o that_o be_v present_a there_o be_v bring_v into_o great_a contempt_n and_o derision_n of_o this_o council_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o whole_a council_n be_v dissipate_v nothing_o fruitful_a be_v there_o at_o all_o enact_v but_o they_o think_v it_o sufficient_o provide_v for_o when_o they_o cause_v this_o place_n and_o the_o like_a to_o be_v quite_o race_v out_o of_o book_n yea_o whole_a book_n according_a to_o their_o accustom_a good_a faith_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n benedict_n and_o gregory_n retain_v still_o on_o both_o side_n the_o papal_a dignity_n notwithstanding_o their_o condemnation_n the_o one_o at_o rimino_n in_o romania_n the_o other_o at_o perpignan_n in_o the_o frontier_n of_o spain_n each_o accompany_v with_o their_o cardinal_n and_o uphold_v by_o the_o prince_n above_o mention_v and_o all_o christendom_n be_v exceed_v weary_a of_o so_o long_a a_o schism_n whereunto_o after_o so_o many_o year_n they_o have_v in_o vain_a seek_v remedy_n in_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n wherefore_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n undertake_v to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o the_o better_a to_o induce_v all_o christian_a prince_n to_o embrace_v the_o same_o he_o take_v pain_n to_o ride_v about_o almost_o all_o europe_n and_o visit_v they_o in_o person_n that_o by_o communicate_v his_o mind_n unto_o they_o he_o may_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o way_n the_o difficulty_n that_o may_v hinder_v so_o great_a a_o work_n neither_o do_v pope_n john_n seem_v to_o be_v against_o it_o either_o because_o he_o hope_v he_o shall_v
conversant_a in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v repute_v humble_a and_o devout_a but_o he_o be_v no_o soon_o settle_v in_o the_o popedom_n but_o he_o be_v change_v into_o another_o man_n he_o begin_v to_o tyrannize_v ill_a demeaning_n himself_o towards_o those_o cardinal_n that_o have_v choose_v he_o and_o do_v other_o outrage_n unaduised_o he_o have_v a_o nephew_n call_v francis_n pregnan_n a_o unprofitable_a member_n &_o more_o licentious_a than_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v speak_v upon_o who_o he_o will_v bestow_v many_o dukedom_n and_o earldom_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicilia_n and_o entitle_v he_o unto_o they_o and_o will_v willing_o if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o his_o power_n have_v make_v he_o sultan_n of_o babylon_n too_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v too_o apparent_a that_o he_o be_v unable_a to_o govern_v a_o small_a family_n to_o conclude_v there_o be_v no_o man_n ever_o in_o the_o popedom_n more_o wicked_a and_o more_o cruel_a in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o cause_v many_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n barbarous_o and_o cruel_o to_o be_v murder_v secum_fw-la super_fw-la hoc_fw-la ut_fw-la aestimo_fw-la diabolo_fw-la dispensante_fw-la the_o devil_n as_o i_o think_v dispense_n with_o he_o for_o it_o or_o atlea_v wise_a join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o of_o boniface_n the_o nine_o he_o be_v of_o a_o goodly_a stature_n but_o a_o vicious_a nature_n for_o we_o read_v of_o none_o that_o ever_o bare_a rule_n in_o the_o apostolic_a see_v that_o dare_v presume_v so_o public_o and_o with_o so_o little_a shame_n to_o commit_v the_o sin_n of_o simony_n scandalize_a without_o respect_n of_o difference_n and_o ordain_v archbishop_n bishop_n prelate_n clerk_n and_o priest_n and_o all_o for_o gain_v he_o likewise_o make_v his_o brother_n marquess_n duke_n earl_n of_o innocent_a the_o seven_o in_o he_o virtue_n and_o vice_n be_v at_o variance_n he_o be_v a_o great_a dissembler_n fiery_a in_o carnal_a affection_n he_o enrich_v his_o kindred_n with_o temporalty_n and_o take_v no_o care_n to_o confirm_v the_o union_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o swear_v to_o do_v of_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o how_o he_o have_v and_o do_v carry_v himself_o touch_n his_o kindred_n and_o that_o union_n that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o he_o 〈◊〉_d be_v apparent_a enough_o and_o these_o four_o give_v no_o alm_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o damnation_n and_o though_o a_o fault_n in_o all_o yet_o worst_a in_o a_o prelate_n because_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o charity_n and_o this_o he_o write_v be_v notary_n of_o the_o apostolic_a letter_n 1408._o an._n 1408._o in_o the_o year_n 1408._o there_o be_v likewise_o a_o epistle_n direct_v to_o this_o gregory_n which_o he_o call_v delusorie_a of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherein_o he_o be_v call_v the_o damnable_a forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n neither_o be_v benedict_n his_o competitor_n forget_v therein_o there_o they_o protest_v that_o the_o world_n from_o thence_o forward_o will_v make_v no_o account_n of_o their_o excommunication_n but_o rather_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o they_o since_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o they_o both_o draw_v man_n into_o open_a perdition_n be_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o unworthy_a of_o the_o popedom_n especial_o gregory_n to_o who_o they_o attribute_v most_o be_v a_o drunkard_n a_o heretic_n a_o destroyer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n a_o man_n accurse_v and_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o speak_v of_o his_o most_o familiar_a friend_n namely_o of_o gabriel_n who_o be_v afterward_o eugenius_n the_o four_o who_o they_o call_v his_o first_o bear_v spring_v from_o his_o reins_n and_o of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o raguse_n they_o say_v he_o be_v a_o demoniacall_a monk_n a_o infernal_a legate_n and_o the_o like_a of_o diverse_a other_o the_o author_n in_o the_o end_n conclude_v that_o this_o schism_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o both_o part_n contemn_v these_o pope_n and_o nothing_o regard_v their_o bull_n knit_v themselves_o in_o friendship_n alliance_n and_o marriage_n one_o with_o the_o other_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o a_o man_n may_v true_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n on_o both_o side_n be_v doubtful_a we_o have_v neither_o a_o true_a pope_n nor_o a_o true_a king_n of_o the_o roman_n behold_v here_o again_o that_o succession_n they_o boast_v of_o he_o likewise_o write_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n and_o attribute_v the_o right_a to_o the_o emperor_n henry_n token_n deligat_fw-la of_o the_o bishop_n of_o magdeburge_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n make_v mention_n of_o he_o in_o his_o treatise_n that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n here_o our_o france_n do_v the_o rather_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n because_o one_o of_o these_o contendant_o be_v then_o resident_a at_o auignion_n clement_n therefore_o be_v depart_v the_o cardinal_n choose_v petrus_n de_fw-fr luna_n call_v benedict_n froissard_n say_v that_o the_o election_n be_v make_v upon_o condition_n if_o it_o please_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o counsel_n otherwise_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v yea_o that_o when_o he_o give_v the_o king_n to_o understand_v of_o his_o popedom_n he_o careless_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n or_o no._n he_o send_v therefore_o unto_o he_o some_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n as_o master_n john_n of_o gigencourt_n master_n peter_n playons_n &_o other_o to_o admonish_v he_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v much_o weaken_v by_o this_o schism_n &_o that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o long_o continue_v in_o that_o state_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n be_v not_o of_o opinion_n that_o the_o clergy_n seek_v grace_n and_o favour_n shall_v send_v their_o petition_n to_o auignon_n notwithstanding_o that_o benedict_n have_v before_o open_v the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o clergy_n man_n which_o the_o king_n likewise_o forbid_v by_o their_o counsel_n until_o it_o be_v otherwise_o determine_v the_o duke_n of_o britain_n do_v the_o like_a notwithstanding_o some_o prince_n of_o france_n favour_v benedict_n because_o he_o deny_v they_o nothing_o the_o king_n therefore_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o pope_n dispose_v of_o such_o benefice_n as_o be_v void_a in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o cardinal_n begin_v to_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v likewise_o lay_v hand_n upon_o those_o benefice_n they_o hold_v within_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o they_o send_v a_o legate_n unto_o he_o to_o assure_v he_o that_o if_o benedict_n be_v less_o please_v unto_o he_o they_o will_v enter_v the_o conclave_n again_o to_o choose_v another_o to_o his_o own_o contentment_n the_o legate_n be_v hear_v and_o withal_o a_o friar_n minorite_n who_o reside_v with_o the_o king_n in_o behalf_n of_o boniface_n pope_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v conclude_v in_o council_n not_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o university_n that_o both_o the_o rival_n shall_v be_v command_v to_o resign_v the_o popedom_n 58._o froissard_n l._n 4._o c._n 58._o and_o all_o the_o cardinal_n their_o cardinalship_n and_o that_o certain_a clergiemen_n that_o be_v man_n know_v to_o be_v honest_a and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n shall_v be_v choose_v out_o of_o germany_n france_n and_o other_o nation_n who_o deliberate_v of_o the_o cause_n among_o themselves_o with_o good_a advice_n and_o without_o all_o fraud_n shall_v restore_v the_o church_n to_o her_o former_a state_n and_o unity_n which_o sentence_n of_o the_o university_n the_o king_n approve_v and_o so_o do_v the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o burgundy_n and_o their_o counsellor_n whereupon_o he_o send_v embassadous_a to_o the_o king_n of_o germany_n bohemia_n hungary_n and_o england_n undertake_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o castille_n navarre_n arragon_n sicilia_n naples_n and_o scotland_n that_o they_o shall_v yield_v their_o obedience_n unto_o he_o to_o whosoever_o he_o and_o his_o realm_n shall_v grant_v he_o there_o be_v much_o time_n spend_v in_o these_o embassage_n but_o yet_o with_o this_o fruit_n that_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n agree_v to_o whatsoever_o the_o king_n of_o france_n think_v convenient_a and_o the_o emperor_n wenceslaus_n in_o the_o year_n 1398_o with_o many_o other_o great_a prince_n come_v to_o rheimes_n to_o consider_v of_o this_o business_n with_o the_o king_n notwithstanding_o he_o pretend_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o his_o journey_n to_o be_v the_o marriage_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n to_o the_o marquesse_n son_n of_o brandebourg_n there_o after_o many_o deliberation_n those_o great_a prince_n be_v assist_v with_o the_o great_a and_o grave_a personage_n of_o their_o state_n decree_n that_o petrus_n de_fw-la alliaco_fw-it bishop_n of_o cambray_n shall_v go_v in_o
between_o both_o be_v the_o emperor_n who_o will_v have_v it_o so_o to_o be_v transfer_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v dissolve_v nevertheless_o he_o find_v so_o much_o reason_n in_o the_o proceed_n of_o they_o of_o basil_n that_o he_o give_v they_o for_o protector_n of_o the_o council_n conrade_n de_fw-fr windzberg_n whereby_o he_o manifest_v both_o that_o he_o approve_v the_o council_n and_o dislike_v the_o wile_n of_o eugenius_n namely_o that_o which_o the_o author_n note_v the_o ambassador_n request_v that_o the_o father_n will_v repair_v and_o transfer_v the_o council_n to_o another_o place_n which_o one_o thing_n eugenius_n seem_v to_o have_v seek_v that_o so_o he_o may_v either_o disperse_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n or_o take_v away_o the_o liberty_n thereof_o during_o the_o parliament_n of_o mentz_n be_v dispute_v among_o the_o divine_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n of_o the_o person_n of_o eugenius_n the_o one_o part_n affirm_v that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n other_o that_o he_o be_v a_o relapse_n and_o some_o deny_v both_o the_o more_o grievous_a sentence_n carry_v it_o away_o that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o relapse_n both_o together_o the_o divine_n therefore_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n eight_o conclusion_n which_o they_o call_v truth_n and_o send_v copy_n of_o they_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v such_o first_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n of_o catholic_a faith_n that_o a_o sacred_a general_a council_n have_v power_n above_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o other_o whosoever_o second_o that_o a_o general_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v can_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o same_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n his_o authority_n either_o dissolve_v or_o transfer_v or_o prorogue_v for_o a_o time_n and_o that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o truth_n three_o that_o he_o which_o obstinate_o oppose_v himself_o to_o these_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o heretic_n four_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o fourrh_n have_v repugn_v these_o truth_n when_o first_o by_o the_o fullness_n of_o apostolic_a power_n he_o attempt_v to_o dissolve_v or_o transfer_v the_o council_n of_o basil_n five_o eugenius_n be_v at_o length_n warn_v by_o the_o sacred_a council_n have_v revoke_v the_o error_n repugnant_a to_o these_o truth_n six_o the_o dissolve_v or_o transfer_v thereof_o the_o second_o time_n by_o eugenius_n attempt_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n aforesaid_a and_o contain_v a_o unexcusable_a error_n concern_v faith_n seventh_o eugenius_n enterprise_v again_o to_o break_v up_o or_o transfer_v the_o council_n be_v fall_v into_o his_o error_n former_o revoke_v eight_o eugenius_n be_v admonish_v by_o the_o synod_n to_o revoke_v the_o dissolution_n or_o translation_n by_o he_o attempt_v for_o the_o second_o time_n persist_v in_o rebellion_n after_o his_o contumacy_n declare_v and_o erect_v a_o conventicle_n at_o ferrara_n declare_v himself_o obstinate_a nevertheless_o the_o father_n will_v have_v these_o yet_o public_o be_v examine_v by_o all_o the_o doctor_n both_o of_o the_o civil_a and_o canon_n law_n for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o day_n lewis_n cardinal_n and_o archbishop_n of_o arles_n sit_v precedent_n a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o courage_n and_o they_o will_v that_o all_o shall_v speak_v their_o opinion_n of_o they_o the_o abbot_n of_o palermo_n vulgar_o call_v panormitan_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o defence_n of_o eugenius_n yet_o dare_v not_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v a_o relapse_n who_o he_o will_v rather_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o prolapse_n because_o from_o a_o relapse_n be_v no_o return_n on_o the_o contrary_a john_n de_fw-fr segovio_n a_o spanish_a divine_a of_o great_a fame_n stiff_o maintain_v out_o of_o his_o own_o say_n that_o he_o be_v a_o infidel_n rather_o than_o a_o believer_n a_o member_n of_o satan_n rather_o than_o of_o christ_n oppose_v to_o that_o singular_a gloss_n allege_v by_o panormitan_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o world_n the_o authority_n of_o s._n hierome_n orbis_n maior_fw-la est_fw-la urbe_fw-la the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v great_a than_o of_o one_o only_a city_n the_o bishop_n of_o argos_n proceed_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v only_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n panormitan_n wax_v in_o choler_n contend_v that_o he_o be_v lord_n thereof_o segovia_n repli_v take_v heed_n what_o thou_o say_v panormitane_n that_o be_v a_o more_o honourable_a title_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereby_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v take_v from_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n when_o they_o ask_v which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a for_o you_o know_v that_o he_o answer_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n rule_v as_o lord_n over_o they_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n ambassador_n of_o the_o french_a king_n stout_o prove_v by_o many_o reason_n that_o eugenius_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o detest_v the_o lack_n of_o courage_n of_o they_o that_o have_v create_v such_o a_o man_n bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o burgos_n ambassador_n for_o spain_n insist_v on_o the_o three_o former_a conclusion_n conclude_v out_o of_o all_o the_o law_n divine_a and_o humane_a that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n which_o deni_v it_o but_o come_v to_o other_o thing_n which_o proper_o respect_v the_o fact_n of_o eugenius_n it_o seem_v say_v the_o author_n that_o he_o somewhat_o depart_v from_o himself_o and_o be_v no_o more_o burgensis_n neither_o do_v that_o grace_n appear_v in_o his_o word_n nor_o that_o gravity_n in_o his_o speech_n or_o cheerfulness_n in_o his_o countenance_n and_o if_o he_o can_v have_v see_v himself_o perhaps_o he_o will_v have_v be_v abash_v at_o himself_o for_o who_o say_v he_o do_v not_o then_o see_v the_o force_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o furnish_v this_o man_n speak_v for_o it_o with_o sentence_n and_o word_n but_o speak_v against_o it_o take_v away_o from_o he_o that_o very_a eloquence_n which_o natural_o be_v ingraft_v in_o he_o yet_o thus_o much_o modesty_n show_v both_o he_o and_o panormitan_n that_o they_o say_v ingenious_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o not_o their_o opinion_n who_o be_v not_o instruct_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon-law_n be_v these_o what_o assessor_n or_o assistant_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o counsel_n which_o neglect_v to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o author_n proceed_v to_o declare_v what_o be_v do_v upon_o those_o three_o conclusion_n upon_o the_o first_o namely_o which_o have_v two_o point_n whether_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o whether_o catholic_a faith_n command_v to_o believe_v so_o and_o for_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v solemn_o cite_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n item_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n etc._n etc._n by_o conference_n then_o of_o place_n and_o by_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n they_o manifest_o prove_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n not_o to_o peter_n much_o less_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o indeed_o that_o many_o pope_n have_v grievous_o err_v and_o of_o these_o they_o produce_v example_n that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o a_o council_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o by_o consequent_a of_o the_o pope_n whence_o of_o annacletus_fw-la and_o calixtus_n it_o be_v call_v mother_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o pope_n only_o his_o vicar_n a_o vicar_n who_o can_v never_o be_v above_o the_o spouse_n who_o be_v one_o body_n with_o the_o bridegroom_n that_o these_o word_n ever_o in_o their_o mouth_n make_v nothing_o for_o they_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n not_o unto_o peter_n for_o edification_n not_o for_o destruction_n which_o consequent_o may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o abuse_v it_o who_o be_v only_a vicar_n and_o steward_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o not_o equal_a to_o the_o church_n see_v christ_n send_v peter_n himself_o to_o the_o church_n tell_v it_o say_v he_o to_o the_o church_n which_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o ought_v to_o be_v account_v a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n that_o this_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v hear_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o a_o general_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v and_o that_o all_o those_o canonist_n which_o buzz_v into_o his_o ear_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v judge_v but_o by_o god_n alone_o that_o the_o first_o seat_n be_v judge_v of_o none_o that_o though_o he_o shall_v lead_v multitude_n of_o soul_n
common_a consent_n of_o the_o state_n george_n prodebraccius_n a_o great_a captain_n and_o a_o professor_n of_o their_o religion_n who_o restore_v the_o condition_n and_o slide_a state_n of_o these_o church_n and_o as_o he_o constant_o persevere_v therein_o notwithstanding_o the_o threat_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o paul_n the_o second_o and_o his_o estate_n expose_v to_o the_o first_o invader_n thereof_o mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o conquest_n of_o this_o province_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o rodolfe_n the_o pope_n legate_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n the_o three_o and_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o many_o of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o after_o many_o battle_n fight_v with_o variable_a success_n he_o can_v not_o bring_v his_o purpose_n to_o pass_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o valiant_a prince_n be_v thereby_o hinder_v from_o the_o necessary_a war_n which_o he_o have_v prosperous_o make_v against_o the_o turk_n be_v accuse_v of_o ingratitude_n for_o that_o he_o have_v set_v upon_o george_n to_o who_o he_o be_v very_o notable_o oblige_v for_o have_v generous_o set_v he_o free_v out_o of_o prison_n without_o any_o ransom_n and_o also_o give_v he_o his_o daughter_n in_o marriage_n when_o he_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o hungary_n in_o hatred_n of_o which_o fact_n even_o after_o the_o death_n of_o george_n when_o mathias_n be_v declare_v king_n by_o the_o pope_n the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n will_v never_o give_v their_o consent_n unto_o it_o but_o prefer_v before_o he_o vladislaus_n son_n of_o casimir_n king_n of_o polonia_n who_o although_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o instigate_v by_o the_o pope_n against_o george_n yet_o will_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o take_v arm_n against_o he_o judge_v it_o a_o thing_n unworthy_a under_o pretence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n to_o violat_a the_o faith_n give_v to_o each_o other_o and_o this_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o year_n 1470._o 64._o progression_n the_o atheism_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o and_o his_o abominable_a and_o wicked_a life_n who_o innocent_a the_o eight_o succeed_v both_o in_o the_o popedom_n and_o in_o all_o impiety_n of_o alexander_n the_o sixth_o by_o what_o devilish_a mean_n he_o attain_v the_o popedom_n and_o of_o his_o abominable_a incestuous_a life_n and_o miserable_a death_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n pass_v into_o italy_n with_o a_o mighty_a army_n and_o of_o his_o valiant_a proceed_n there_o now_o it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v come_v to_o that_o height_n of_o impiety_n and_o tyranny_n that_o they_o can_v hardly_o ascend_v to_o a_o high_a step_n and_o yet_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v we_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v that_o they_o find_v mean_n to_o add_v both_o a_o ridge_n and_o pinnacle_n to_o that_o build_n it_o be_v beyond_o all_o belief_n especial_o we_o report_v it_o have_v we_o not_o their_o own_o author_n to_o witness_v it_o against_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 1471_o francis_n de_fw-fr rovere_z bear_v in_o savoy_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n get_v the_o popedom_n who_o be_v call_v sixtus_n the_o four_o of_o this_o man_n onuphrius_n give_v this_o testimony_n that_o for_o his_o great_a learning_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v cardinal_n all_o question_n that_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o where_o let_v the_o reader_n note_v from_o that_o which_o follow_v upon_o who_o faith_n the_o catholic_a faith_n depend_v at_o the_o first_o onset_n he_o make_v show_v of_o call_v a_o council_n at_o lateran_n under_o a_o twofold_a pretence_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a war_n the_o cause_n be_v both_o very_a plausible_a both_o for_o the_o allay_n of_o the_o grievous_a groan_n of_o good_a man_n and_o the_o free_v they_o of_o their_o fear_n but_o the_o place_n be_v not_o think_v so_o fit_v be_v that_o out_o of_o which_o there_o never_o come_v any_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o church_n the_o emperor_n frederick_n desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o border_n of_o germany_n and_o at_o the_o instant_a request_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o carnie_n who_o give_v his_o best_a assistance_n to_o forward_a the_o reformation_n the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n call_v a_o assembly_n of_o many_o bishop_n at_o basil_n but_o sixtus_n hear_v thereof_o helvetia_n stumfius_fw-la in_o histor_n helvetia_n send_v angelus_n the_o bishop_n of_o suesse_n to_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o city_n threaten_v to_o interdict_v they_o if_o they_o send_v not_o the_o archbishop_n to_o rome_n bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n &_o account_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v with_o he_o for_o excommunicate_a person_n but_o the_o senate_n of_o basil_n not_o endure_v that_o so_o great_a a_o wrong_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o they_o in_o a_o free_a city_n the_o legate_n excommunicate_v they_o depart_v in_o choler_n frederic_n nevertheless_o persist_v in_o his_o purpose_n but_o yet_o the_o better_a to_o pacify_v sixtus_n he_o desire_v that_o the_o council_n may_v be_v call_v at_o vtina_n in_o friuli_n a_o country_n in_o italy_n but_o that_o please_v he_o not_o neither_o this_o difficulty_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v he_o have_v overcome_v &_o withal_o establish_v his_o seat_n with_o the_o mutual_a legation_n of_o prince_n he_o bend_v all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o kindred_n onuphr_n volateran_n &_o onuphr_n volateran_n and_o onuphrius_n say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o he_o be_v account_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o very_a love_a and_o indulgent_a towards_o his_o kindred_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o have_v do_v and_o grant_v many_o thing_n praeter_fw-la fas_fw-la jusque_fw-la against_o all_o law_n humane_a and_o divine_a he_o create_v therefore_o two_o cardinal_n and_o that_o not_o without_o a_o mystery_n peter_n riere_n who_o he_o have_v bring_v up_o from_o a_o child_n with_o his_o brother_n jeronimo_n and_o julian_n his_o brother_n son_n who_o be_v afterward_o julius_n the_o second_o peter_n be_v in_o a_o short_a time_n strange_o enrich_v become_v so_o sumptuous_a that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v bear_v to_o spend_v money_n for_o he_o consume_v in_o those_o two_o year_n wherein_o he_o live_v a_o cardinal_n two_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n in_o his_o ordinary_a household_n expense_n leave_v forty_o thousand_o crown_n in_o debt_n and_o other_o infinite_a riches_n and_o movable_a good_n he_o die_v weaken_v and_o wear_v out_o with_o pleasure_n but_o nevertheless_o a_o legate_n a_o mad_a choice_n it_o be_v in_o italy_n it_o be_v he_o who_o prodigious_a prodigality_n baptista_n fulgosius_n describe_v to_o be_v such_o 4._o baptista_n fulg._n dict_z &_o factor_n memorab_n l._n 9_o baptista_n mantuanus_fw-la in_o alphonso_n l._n 4._o that_o he_o usual_o give_v to_o tiresia_n his_o harlot_n pantofle_n wrought_v all_o over_o with_o pearl_n of_o who_o likewise_o baptista_n mantua_n write_v these_o verse_n wherein_o jupiter_n thus_o salute_v he_o in_o hell_n at_o tu_fw-la implume_v caput_fw-la cvi_fw-la tanta_fw-la licentia_fw-la quondam_a foemineos_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o coitus_fw-la tua_fw-la furta_fw-la putabas_fw-la hic_fw-la quoque_fw-la praetextu_fw-la mitrae_fw-la impunita_fw-la relinquit_fw-la sic_fw-la meruit_fw-la tua_fw-la foeda_fw-la venus_n etc._n etc._n but_o thou_o o_o bauld-pate_n who_o once_o may_v free_o glut_v thy_o desire_n with_o woman_n company_n think_v thou_o thy_o mitre_n can_v here_o thy_o theft_n defend_v such_o have_v the_o desert_n of_o thy_o leachery_n be_v etc._n etc._n to_o the_o reproach_n and_o ignominy_n both_o of_o pope_n sixtus_n and_o himself_o of_o julian_n we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o in_o his_o place_n have_v provide_v for_o these_o two_o that_o be_v near_a unto_o he_o both_o in_o blood_n and_o affection_n he_o bend_v his_o endeavour_n to_o the_o promotion_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o kindred_n he_o make_v therefore_o his_o brother_n jeronimo_n bring_v up_o with_o he_o the_o prince_n of_o forlie_n and_o imola_n whether_o by_o right_n or_o wrong_n he_o regard_v not_o who_o he_o marry_v to_o catherina_n the_o bastard_n daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o milan_n have_v first_o bestow_v a_o hat_n upon_o ascanius_n the_o duke_n son_n to_o get_v his_o father_n consent_n present_o after_o he_o raise_v leonard_n his_o brother_n son_n who_o he_o marry_v to_o a_o bastard_n of_o king_n ferdinand_n and_o make_v he_o governor_n of_o rome_n he_o make_v john_n also_o the_o son_n of_o cardinal_n julian_n prince_n of_o soria_n and_o senogallia_n who_o marry_v joan_n the_o daughter_n of_o frederick_n of_o montefeltro_n duke_n of_o urbin_n from_o who_o come_v franciscus_n maria_n who_o his_o uncle_n die_v without_o heir_n male_a obtain_v the_o dukedom_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n do_v he_o exalt_v diverse_a other_o he_o be_v so_o liberal_a say_v
against_o all_o order_n they_o determine_v of_o a_o successor_n without_o the_o conclave_n because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o s._n peter_n ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la be_v mighty_a in_o friend_n and_o fame_n and_o power_n have_v get_v so_o many_o voice_n on_o his_o part_n that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o man_n that_o dare_v so_o much_o as_o mutter_v against_o he_o wherefore_o by_o a_o new_a example_n he_o enter_v the_o conclave_n assure_v before_o of_o the_o popedom_n and_o the_o door_n be_v never_o shut_v be_v choose_v the_o first_o night_n who_o to_o signify_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o design_n even_o in_o the_o first_o entrance_n of_o his_o popedom_n will_v be_v call_v julius_n the_o second_o whereupon_o every_o man_n say_v guicciardine_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o astonishment_n for_o that_o they_o have_v consent_v upon_o the_o choice_n of_o such_o a_o pope_n as_o all_o man_n know_v to_o be_v dangerous_a intolerable_a truculent_a and_o unquiet_a yea_o that_o he_o have_v already_o practise_v strange_a hatred_n against_o many_o great_a personage_n but_o have_v note_v in_o he_o those_o part_n that_o be_v best_o worthy_a the_o consideration_n that_o say_v he_o which_o stand_v he_o in_o best_a stead_n for_o the_o attainment_n of_o this_o dignity_n be_v the_o large_a promise_n that_o he_o make_v to_o those_o cardinal_n prince_n baron_n and_o other_o who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v best_o able_a to_o advance_v and_o forward_o that_o business_n think_v it_o good_a policy_n not_o to_o deny_v they_o any_o thing_n they_o shall_v ask_v moreover_o he_o give_v much_o money_n and_o many_o benefice_n and_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n as_o well_o of_o his_o own_o as_o other_o man_n for_o that_o opinion_n there_o be_v of_o his_o bounty_n that_o diverse_a there_o be_v that_o come_v unto_o he_o offer_v unto_o he_o what_o they_o possess_v to_o use_v their_o money_n their_o name_n their_o office_n their_o benefice_n at_o his_o pleasure_n no_o man_n consider_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o have_v obtain_v the_o popedom_n he_o be_v either_o able_a or_o aught_o to_o perform_v be_v heretofore_o account_v so_o upright_o and_o so_o true_a that_o alexander_n the_o sixth_o though_o he_o be_v his_o great_a enemy_n otherwise_o speak_v all_o the_o ill_a that_o may_v be_v of_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o only_a virtue_n in_o he_o but_o he_o that_o very_o well_o know_v that_o no_o man_n may_v more_o easy_o deceive_v than_o he_o that_o be_v think_v never_o to_o deceive_v fear_v not_o a_o little_a to_o crack_v that_o credit_n to_o get_v a_o popedom_n and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o election_n he_o have_v a_o daughter_n which_o be_v name_v felix_n who_o he_o present_o marry_v to_o jordanus_n vrsinus_n and_o his_o niece_n his_o sister_n daughter_n to_o antonius_n columna_fw-la and_o thus_o he_o settle_v himself_o at_o rome_n from_o thence_o forward_o he_o bend_v his_o endeavour_n by_o arm_n to_o bring_v romania_n under_o his_o subjection_n and_o to_o recover_v all_o that_o which_o borgia_n and_o other_o have_v get_v into_o their_o possession_n and_o if_o any_o refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o be_v present_o excommunicate_v then_o he_o shake_v off_o that_o moderation_n which_o in_o his_o cardinalship_n he_o retain_v both_o in_o word_n &_o deed_n say_v onuphrius_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o be_v modest_a himself_o but_o he_o take_v a_o care_n to_o receive_v none_o but_o such_o into_o his_o house_n 2._o onuphr_n in_o julio_n 2._o so_o hard_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v and_o ever_o have_v be_v to_o know_v the_o humour_n of_o he_o that_o affect_v a_o popedom_n his_o first_o exploit_n be_v to_o drive_v the_o bentevoli_n with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n out_o of_o bononia_n and_o to_o leave_v their_o house_n and_o family_n to_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o people_n then_o he_o turn_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o venetian_n who_o he_o excommunicate_v and_o make_v a_o prey_n to_o whosoever_o shall_v first_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o our_o lewis_n the_o twelve_o with_o who_o he_o have_v first_o make_v a_o league_n after_o the_o battle_n win_v at_o abdua_n against_o the_o venetian_n he_o great_o suspect_v notwithstanding_o he_o have_v the_o great_a part_n in_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o victory_n he_o attempt_v all_o the_o way_n he_o can_v to_o drive_v he_o out_o of_o italy_n and_o want_v no_o subtle_a devise_n to_o compass_v it_o he_o incite_v lewis_n and_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n against_o the_o venetian_n &_o conspire_v with_o the_o venetian_n against_o they_o both_o he_o interdict_a alphonsus_n duke_n of_o ferrara_n and_o make_v open_a war_n against_o he_o because_o he_o have_v take_v part_n with_o france_n and_o be_v command_v to_o depart_v do_v not_o obey_v lewis_n himself_o have_v send_v certain_a force_n to_o alphonsus_n chron._n christoph_n massaeus_n l._n 20._o chron._n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o caluimontius_n julius_n excommunicate_v caluimontius_n and_o all_o the_o chief_a leader_n of_o the_o army_n wherefore_o maximilian_n and_o lewis_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v repress_v his_o insolency_n enter_v into_o consideration_n by_o what_o mean_v they_o may_v call_v he_o to_o a_o council_n whereupon_o in_o the_o year_n 1510_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o september_n 1510._o guicciard_n l._n 9_o an._n 1510._o lewis_n hold_v a_o national_a council_n at_o tours_n wherein_o it_o be_v inquire_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o pope_n without_o a_o cause_n to_o make_v war_n against_o a_o prince_n it_o be_v conclude_v not_o lawful_a and_o whether_o any_o such_o prince_n defend_v may_v not_o assault_v he_o &_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o obedience_n it_o be_v conclude_v lawful_a moreover_o it_o be_v resolve_v to_o maintain_v in_o france_n the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n and_o in_o all_o cause_n to_o neglect_v his_o censure_n and_o that_o the_o king_n before_o he_o shall_v withdraw_v himself_o from_o his_o obedience_n shall_v certify_v julius_n by_o his_o embassador_n of_o these_o article_n ordain_v by_o his_o clergy_n that_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o obey_v they_o he_o may_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v call_v to_o a_o general_a council_n and_o moreover_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v impose_v upon_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n a_o certain_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o be_v employ_v against_o julius_n if_o he_o shall_v proceed_v in_o his_o determination_n it_o happen_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o gurse_n arrive_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o honourable_a assembly_n at_o what_o time_n there_o come_v likewise_o a_o messenger_n who_o give_v they_o to_o understand_v of_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o julius_n wereupon_o the_o 27_o of_o september_n a_o general_a council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o at_o lion_n to_o be_v celebrate_v about_o the_o begin_n of_o march_n follow_v all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o advice_n of_o five_o of_o the_o chief_a cardinal_n of_o s._n cross_n &_o cosentia_n spaniard_n bayeux_n &_o s._n malo_n french_a and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o s._n severine_n a_o italian_a consent_v with_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n that_o julius_n shall_v be_v enforce_v to_o the_o council_n to_o which_o end_n they_o be_v depart_v from_o he_o 9_o guicciard_n l._n 9_o notwithstanding_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v guicciardine_n they_o have_v as_o bad_a mind_n and_o be_v as_o little_a to_o be_v trust_v as_o himself_o so_o universal_a be_v the_o corruption_n of_o that_o see_v how_o good_a soever_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o king_n be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n julius_n be_v not_o idle_a though_o he_o think_v of_o nothing_o less_o than_o what_o become_v a_o pope_n he_o agree_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr medicis_n with_o marcus_n antonius_n columna_fw-la and_o other_o young_a man_n of_o florence_n to_o kill_v peter_n soderin_n the_o standard-bearer_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o florence_n because_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o man_n that_o persuade_v the_o florentine_n to_o take_v part_n with_o france_n which_o turn_v to_o his_o great_a infamy_n be_v resolve_v to_o attempt_n ferrara_n he_o think_v it_o better_o first_o to_o invade_v mirandula_n which_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o be_v a_o long_a siege_n be_v much_o trouble_v that_o thing_n succeed_v not_o according_a to_o his_o expectation_n he_o come_v to_o the_o siege_n in_o his_o own_o person_n a_o thing_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o nor_o ever_o to_o be_v expect_v that_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n say_v guicciardine_n shall_v invade_v a_o christian_a city_n and_o be_v old_a and_o sickly_a shall_v in_o his_o own_o person_n set_v forward_o a_o war_n against_o christian_a prince_n first_o raise_v by_o himself_o wherein_o he_o be_v so_o
earnest_o bend_v and_o over_o hasty_a that_o he_o never_o think_v any_o thing_n do_v with_o speed_n enough_o but_o ever_o kindle_v with_o fury_n cry_v out_o to_o the_o captain_n and_o choose_v his_o own_o lodging_n among_o the_o ordnance_n insomuch_o that_o in_o his_o kitchen_n two_o of_o his_o servant_n be_v slay_v with_o a_o shot_n whatsoever_o his_o cardinal_n can_v persuade_v to_o the_o contrary_a tell_v he_o that_o hereby_o both_o his_o own_o person_n and_o the_o whole_a see_v be_v make_v a_o scandal_n and_o a_o laugh_a stock_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o say_v monstrelet_n to_o this_o purpose_n he_o leave_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o title_n of_o mars_n the_o god_n of_o war_n display_v in_o the_o field_n his_o triple_a crown_n and_o spend_v his_o night_n in_o the_o watch_n how_o goodly_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o see_v the_o mitre_n cross_n and_o crosier-stave_n fly_v up_o and_o down_o the_o field_n god_n he_o know_v it_o be_v not_o likely_a any_o devil_n can_v be_v there_o where_o blessing_n be_v sell_v at_o so_o base_a a_o price_n mirandula_n be_v take_v he_o set_v forward_o with_o his_o army_n against_o ferrara_n and_o neglect_v these_o condition_n that_o the_o emperor_n offer_v and_o the_o counsel_n of_o ferdinand_n of_o spain_n his_o friend_n he_o persist_v in_o his_o determination_n whereupon_o it_o be_v think_v good_a to_o cite_v he_o to_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n on_o the_o one_o side_n those_o five_o cardinal_n with_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n urge_v it_o as_o be_v a_o man_n notorious_o scandalous_a incorrigible_a a_o stirrer_n up_o of_o war_n and_o altogether_o unfit_a to_o rule_v the_o popedom_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o authority_n of_o call_v a_o council_n be_v divolue_v unto_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n king_n lewis_n the_o twelve_o be_v ready_a by_o force_n and_o if_o need_n be_v to_o march_v against_o he_o with_o his_o army_n in_o his_o own_o person_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v no_o assistance_n from_o maximilian_n who_o have_v make_v a_o truce_n with_o the_o pope_n be_v therefore_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n condemn_v of_o inconstancy_n it_o be_v worthy_a the_o note_n that_o by_o the_o command_n of_o lewis_n there_o be_v money_n coin_a in_o france_n which_o yet_o remain_v in_o the_o custody_n of_o some_o in_o the_o one_o side_n whereof_o there_o be_v this_o mot_n i_o will_v destroy_v babylon_n and_o in_o some_o i_o will_v destroy_v the_o name_n of_o babylon_n that_o it_o may_v seem_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o any_o that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n to_o we_o have_v so_o great_a a_o author_n even_o the_o father_n of_o france_n julius_n therefore_o create_v eight_o new_a cardinal_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o win_v unto_o he_o other_o prince_n contrary_a to_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v at_o his_o election_n triwltius_n therefore_o the_o leader_n of_o the_o french_a force_n have_v free_v ferrara_n from_o fear_n take_v bononia_n public_o fasten_v his_o placart_n whereby_o julius_n be_v cite_v to_o pisa_n he_o retire_v himself_o in_o despair_n to_o rome_n no_o less_o wound_v in_o his_o mind_n that_o the_o duke_n of_o urbin_n his_o nephew_n have_v stab_v the_o cardinal_n of_o pavia_n his_o legate_n and_o inward_a friend_n in_o a_o manner_n before_o his_o eye_n for_o his_o many_o and_o monstrous_a wickedness_n say_v guicciardine_n worthy_a the_o great_a and_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n then_o gather_v heart_n he_o confirm_v his_o truce_n mollify_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o emperor_n win_v he_o from_o the_o alliance_n of_o france_n and_o think_v now_o he_o have_v overcome_v all_o difficulty_n he_o apply_v his_o thought_n only_o to_o lewis_n thunder_v against_o he_o with_o his_o excommunication_n and_o interdict_v his_o kingdom_n but_o our_o clergy_n yield_v he_o never_o the_o more_o obedience_n proceed_v still_o in_o set_v forward_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n which_o at_o the_o last_o be_v think_v to_o be_v more_o safe_a and_o commodious_a to_o transfer_v to_o milan_n where_o again_o these_o good_a cardinal_n get_v no_o better_a reputation_n than_o julius_n at_o rome_n at_o length_n julius_n with_o his_o confederate_n raise_v a_o army_n which_o doubtless_o will_v daily_o increase_v great_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o jealousy_n that_o many_o prince_n have_v of_o the_o greatness_n of_o france_n and_o above_o all_o the_o spaniard_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o naples_n which_o the_o french_a pretend_v a_o right_a unto_o but_o king_n lewis_n see_v himself_o alone_a against_o so_o many_o enemy_n either_o open_a or_o ready_a short_o to_o declare_v themselves_o resolve_v to_o win_v time_n and_o command_v gaston_n de_fw-fr foix_n his_o lieutenant_n general_a in_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n to_o omit_v no_o occasion_n of_o fight_v with_o the_o pope_n army_n wherein_o if_o he_o get_v the_o victory_n he_o shall_v with_o all_o speed_n march_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o assail_v the_o pope_n without_o any_o reverence_n towards_o he_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o it_o may_v be_v esteem_v he_o do_v it_o lawful_o and_o by_o good_a right_n he_o do_v all_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n which_o appoint_v their_o legate_n in_o the_o army_n who_o receive_v in_o the_o name_n thereof_o the_o city_n conquer_v in_o the_o war_n this_o be_v the_o cardinal_n of_o s._n severin_n ordain_v by_o the_o cardinal_n legate_n of_o bononia_n a_o man_n say_v our_o author_n more_o addict_v to_o war_n 10_o guicciard_n l._n 10_o than_o religion_n therefore_o gaston_n after_o some_o notable_a exploit_n of_o arm_n for_o to_o draw_v the_o pope_n army_n to_o battle_n besiege_v ravenna_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n julius_n army_n come_v to_o succour_v it_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr medicis_n after_o leo_n the_o ten_o exile_a from_o florence_n who_o he_o have_v advance_v chief_o in_o hatred_n of_o the_o florentine_n but_o gaston_n march_v against_o they_o and_o upon_o a_o easter_n day_n give_v they_o battle_n wherein_o he_o obtain_v that_o so_o renown_a victory_n of_o ravenna_n the_o legate_n take_v and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o commander_n of_o the_o army_n upon_o the_o first_o news_n thereof_o julius_n despair_v be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v rome_n but_o the_o death_n of_o gaston_n interrupt_v the_o course_n of_o the_o victory_n and_o so_o give_v he_o time_n to_o breath_n and_o settle_v himself_o in_o his_o seat_n and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o that_o the_o marshal_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr palice_n with_o the_o french_a force_n which_o he_o command_v after_o the_o death_n of_o gaston_n be_v call_v back_o into_o france_n to_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o swisser_n who_o partly_o in_o favour_n of_o julius_n partly_o move_v by_o their_o own_o commodity_n have_v spread_v themselves_o over_o bourgundie_n now_o he_o turn_v this_o victory_n obtain_v by_o the_o french_a man_n to_o his_o own_o commodity_n by_o set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o prince_n of_o how_o great_a moment_n it_o be_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o french_a man_n shall_v be_v repress_v this_o he_o do_v with_o the_o state_n of_o italy_n chief_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n and_o the_o florentine_n to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o league_n with_o france_n he_o blame_v the_o king_n indiscretion_n who_o not_o know_v how_o to_o use_v his_o good_a fortune_n have_v withdraw_v his_o succour_n and_o abandon_v his_o confederate_n to_o his_o discretion_n and_o now_o he_o only_o speak_v of_o shake_v off_o the_o arragonois_n and_o of_o drive_v the_o spanish_a force_n out_o of_o italy_n or_o defeat_v they_o by_o who_o help_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v be_v maintain_v in_o his_o adversity_n for_o to_o procure_v to_o himself_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n last_o he_o think_v himself_o in_o sufficient_a safety_n by_o the_o friendship_n and_o confederacy_n of_o the_o swisser_n moreover_o he_o now_o open_o despise_v the_o council_n of_o pisa_n which_o have_v be_v translate_v to_o milan_n because_o it_o be_v only_o maintain_v by_o the_o french_a force_n who_o have_v now_o enough_o to_o do_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o and_o take_v again_o courage_n oppose_v unto_o it_o another_o council_n at_o lateran_n excommunicate_v all_o they_o that_o adhere_v to_o that_o of_o pisa_n and_o king_n lewis_n by_o name_n from_o who_o by_o his_o bull_n set_v forth_o be_v take_v away_o the_o title_n of_o most-christian_a transfer_v it_o to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n who_o he_o solicit_v to_o make_v war_n against_o france_n the_o kingdom_n whereof_o by_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o in_o a_o express_a bull_n he_o expose_v to_o he_o that_o will_v first_o invade_v it_o but_o amid_o such_o and_o so_o great_a thought_n say_v guicciardine_n and_o other_o perhaps_o great_a &_o more_o secret_a for_o nothing_o so_o
prostitute_v set_v to_o sale_n and_o utter_v his_o indulgence_n at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n moreover_o he_o open_v heaven_n curse_v the_o earth_n quench_v purgatory_n shut_v hell_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n he_o make_v saint_n bind_v devil_n command_v angel_n make_v himself_o precedent_n in_o general_a counsel_n head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n yea_o spouse_n thereof_o which_o title_n be_v due_a unto_o none_o but_o to_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o incommunicable_a to_o any_o creature_n god_n on_o earth_n make_v out_o of_o earth_n command_v in_o heaven_n he_o ordain_v a_o god_n to_o be_v worship_v on_o earth_n which_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o do_v believe_v to_o be_v god_n who_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v carry_v about_o on_o horseback_n before_o he_o for_o to_o get_v to_o himself_o the_o great_a reverence_n even_o for_o the_o most_o part_n among_o his_o vile_a carriage_n among_o scullion_n and_o lackey_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o under_o pretence_n of_o his_o vicarship_n because_o say_v he_o after_o christ_n glorious_a resurrection_n all_o power_n be_v give_v he_o from_o the_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n which_o the_o seat_n be_v vacant_a be_v celebrate_v for_o obtain_v a_o new_a pope_n vacant_a cerem_fw-la roman_n l._n 1._o sect._n 15._o de_fw-fr officio_fw-la missae_fw-la astol_n sede_fw-la vacant_a this_o tractus_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v sing_v the_o head_n thereof_o shall_v proceed_v out_o of_o it_o to_o wit_n of_o israel_n and_o a_o prince_n shall_v come_v from_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v also_o that_o of_o saint_n john_n in_o the_o gospel_n apply_v to_o the_o future_a election_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o orphan_n i_o will_v ask_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o now_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o blasphemous_a that_o they_o be_v ashamed_a or_o dare_v not_o use_v further_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v elect_v and_o have_v put_v on_o red_a hose_n and_o shoe_n he_o be_v carry_v and_o set_v upon_o a_o altar_n the_o seat_n of_o their_o god_n and_o there_o worship_v consequent_o with_o religious_a worship_n due_a to_o god_n what_o need_v more_o 1._o cerem_fw-la rom._n l._n 1._o sect_n 1._o c._n 6._o erasm_n in_o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n c._n 1._o in_o the_o very_a school_n leo_n the_o ten_o be_v pope_n they_o fear_v not_o to_o dispute_v note_v reader_n how_o far_o they_o extend_v his_o vicarship_n whether_o the_o pope_n may_v abrogate_v that_o which_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n whether_o he_o may_v ordain_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n whether_o he_o may_v add_v to_o the_o creed_n a_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n whether_o he_o have_v great_a power_n than_o s._n peter_n or_o but_o equal_a whether_o he_o may_v command_v the_o angel_n or_o can_v take_v purgatory_n quite_o away_o whether_o he_o be_v but_o mere_a man_n or_o as_o it_o be_v god_n whether_o with_o christ_n he_o partake_v of_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a how_o many_o enormity_n be_v commit_v in_o these_o word_n yea_o in_o the_o least_o of_o they_o how_o manifold_o they_o offend_v the_o divine_a majesty_n when_o therefore_o we_o call_v to_o mind_v all_o these_o thing_n how_o can_v we_o otherwise_o apply_v or_o expound_v that_o prophetical_a place_n of_o s._n paul_n 4._o 2._o thess_n 2._o v._n 4._o he_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o that_o be_v worship_v for_o let_v they_o show_v we_o in_o all_o these_o sixteen_o age_n any_o other_o so_o that_o he_o sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v god_n in_o the_o church_n itself_o so_o that_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v he_o among_o the_o turk_n in_o assyria_n yea_o if_o we_o believe_v he_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o contract_v into_o his_o own_o person_n the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o spouse_n both_o together_o and_o to_o who_o again_o beside_o may_v we_o apply_v the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n of_o the_o beast_n ascend_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n 3._o apocal._n c._n 13._o v._n 11._o &_o 17._o v._o 3._o which_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n but_o speak_v like_o the_o dragon_n of_o the_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n for_o where_o be_v there_o more_o speech_n of_o christ_n and_o less_o believe_v he_o where_o more_o give_v he_o kiss_v together_o with_o buffet_n where_o so_o monstrous_a so_o outrageous_a blasphemy_n under_o that_o most_o holy_a name_n be_v not_o this_o proper_o to_o put_v on_o jesus_n a_o purple_a garment_n to_o put_v a_o reed_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o in_o mockery_n as_o if_o he_o see_v nothing_o in_o humane_a affair_n especial_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o of_o we_o be_v it_o that_o smite_v thou_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o his_o spiritual_a domination_n now_o of_o the_o temporal_a we_o find_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n under_o persecution_n have_v learn_v by_o the_o testament_n of_o our_o saviour_n not_o to_o affect_v worldly_a power_n but_o to_o be_v ready_a contrariwise_o to_o suffer_v cruelty_n from_o earthly_a prince_n by_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n peter_n and_o also_o by_o their_o example_n to_o honour_v the_o king_n and_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o obey_v the_o froward_a and_o those_o that_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v please_v not_o to_o rule_v as_o lord_n ne_fw-la quidem_fw-la in_o domini_fw-la cleros_fw-la from_o whence_o come_v the_o name_n of_o clergy_n and_o sure_o till_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o some_o time_n after_o they_o have_v not_o any_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n yea_o and_o after_o that_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o christian_a prince_n they_o be_v enrich_v for_o many_o age_n they_o speak_v and_o live_v submissive_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o vassal_n and_o servant_n and_o as_o other_o subject_n suffer_v both_o general_a and_o provincial_a counsel_n to_o be_v call_v and_o assemble_v without_o contradiction_n by_o christian_a emperor_n and_o prince_n and_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o they_o and_o their_o ordinance_n and_o at_o their_o commandment_n come_v and_o go_v without_o complain_v without_o so_o much_o as_o mutter_n of_o these_o their_o document_n or_o pretension_n but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o important_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o this_o vicar_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v through_o all_o the_o world_n gird_v and_o arm_v with_o two_o sword_n where_o be_v now_o their_o zeal_n that_o they_o suffer_v with_o such_o negligence_n their_o right_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n to_o perish_v to_o be_v withhold_v to_o the_o manifest_a damage_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o be_v prescribe_v and_o to_o be_v usurp_v from_o he_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n without_o any_o gainsaying_n interpellation_n or_o any_o declaration_n of_o those_o right_n but_o the_o roman_a empire_n now_o fall_v to_o ruin_n by_o reason_n both_o of_o the_o inward_a disease_n of_o the_o same_o and_o the_o sundry_a eruption_n of_o the_o northern_a people_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o build_v on_o those_o ruin_n and_o to_o abuse_v the_o absence_n and_o weakness_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o they_o expel_v out_o of_o italy_n by_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lombard_n and_o confine_v they_o to_o greece_n and_o under_o colour_n that_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v image_n into_o their_o temple_n cut_v they_o off_o from_o the_o church_n absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o withdraw_v they_o from_o obedience_n to_o their_o prince_n bind_v they_o at_o last_o to_o themselves_o in_o italy_n the_o lombard_n wax_v too_o strong_a they_o supplant_v they_o by_o the_o frenchman_n and_o after_o that_o the_o frenchman_n by_o the_o german_n oppose_v ever_o they_o that_o be_v far_o off_o against_o they_o that_o be_v near_o and_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o have_v get_v credit_n and_o authority_n with_o the_o people_n they_o cast_v he_o out_o by_o intrude_a another_z which_o can_v not_o but_o necessary_o depend_v on_o their_o favour_n and_o when_o the_o german_n go_v about_o to_o settle_v and_o establish_v their_o empire_n in_o italy_n they_o stir_v up_o faction_n against_o they_o in_o germany_n and_o cause_v the_o son_n by_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o duty_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a natural_a and_o civil_a to_o rise_v